Brevet Brigadier-General, U. S. V.
THE STORY
OF
COMPANY A
TWENTY-FIFTH REGIMENT, MASS. VOLS.
IN THE
WAR OF THE REBELLION.
BY SAMUEL H. PUTNAM.
WORCESTER, MASS.:
PUTNAM, DAVIS AND COMPANY, PUBLISHERS.
1886.
E
5
ONE HUNDRED AND SEVENTY-FIVE COPIES PRINTED :
SIX COPIES ON LARGE PAPER WITH AUTOGRAPH SIGNATURES.
COPYRIGHT, 1886,
By S. H. Putnam.
WOBCE8TEB: PBIVATE PBE8S OK FBANKLIN P. RN'E.
TO THE MEMORY
OF
29eatr of (ftompan
I DEDICATE
THIS SIMPLE STORY.
M198519
Preface.
'""pHIS STORY is written from the standpoint of a private soldier,
for soldiers — the surviving members of Company A. It is an
attempt to give, somewhat in detail, the everyday life of soldiers
in active service and under canvas walls, with incidents of camp,
march, and bivouac. The "Story" may possess but little merit,
yet it may please the "Boys" for whom it was written.
No march is described in which the writer did not participate,
no battle in which he did not take a hand, in his humble position ;
and it is claimed that the story is a true one. The language is
sometimes rough, but it should be remembered that it was a rough
life we were leading. If an occasional strong expression is found
in these pages I can only say that "our army swore terribly in
Flanders" ; and I have tried to describe the soldier as I saw him
— as I knew him.
I am indebted to my friend, Franklin P. Rice, for the elegant
typographical appearance of the book. It is issued from his private
press, and is entirely the work of his own hands. Thanks are due
Preface.
W. P. Derby, Esq., author of the History of the Twenty-seventh
(Mass.) Regiment, for the use of the maps contained in this vol-
ume. The fine portrait of our Captain is from a photograph by
Black of Boston, taken in 1863.
SAMUEL H. PUTNAM.
Worcester, Mass.
1 8th Annual Reunion of Co. A.,
June 3d, 1886.
Contents.
CHAPTER I. FORMATION. Pages 7 to 22.
CHAPPER II. AT CAMP LINCOLN. Pages 23 to 35.
CHAPTER III. CAMP HICKS. Pages 36 to 45.
CHAPTER IV. THE BURNSIDE EXPEDITION. Pages 46 to 61.
CHAPTER V. THE BATTLE OF ROANOKE. Pages 62 to 96.
CHAPTER VI. THE CAPTURE OF NEW BERNE. Pages 97 to 1 1 1.
CHAPTER VII. NEW BERNE AND CAMP OLIVER. Pages 1 1 2 to 1 29.
CHAPTER VIII. EXPEDITIONS. Pages 130 to 158.
CHAFrER IX. EXPEDITIONS (continued}. Pages 159 to 195.
CHAPTER X. CAMP, MARCH, AND BIVOUAC. Pages 196 to 226.
CHAPTER XI. RE-ENLISTING. Pages 227 to 256.
CHAPTER XII. THE BATTLE SUMMER. Pages 257 to 324.
Battles and Skirmishes
in which Company A took part.
ROANOKE ISLAND,
NEW BERNE,
KINSTON,
WHITEHALL, ,.
GOLDSBORO', .
Near KINSTON, . ' .
DEEP GULLY,
GUM SWAMP,
PORT WALTHAL,
CHESTERFIELD JUNCTION,
ARROWFIELD CHURCH,
PALMER'S CREEK,
DREWRY'S BLUFF,
COBB'S HILL,
COLD HARBOR,
( < it
" " Charge,
PETERSBURG, Guns captured,
( i
1 ' Charge,
< <
' « Crater,
February 8, 1862.
March 14, "
December 14, "
16, "
1 8, "
March 6, 1863.
" 13, "
May 22, "
" 6, 1864.
11 16, M
" 21, "
June i, "
" 16, "
" 18, "
" 30, "
July 30, « '
THE STORY OF COMPANY A.
CHAPTER I.
FORMATION.
DARK CLOUDS which had so long low
ered above the American horizon at last burst
over the fiery land of South Carolina ; and with the °Penins
of the
first gun fired by rebellious hands at Fort Sumter,
the country was plunged into a whirlwind of civil
war.
If, as Emerson says, the first shot fired at Con-
cord was heard round the world, so the first shot
at Sumter, April I2th, 1861, was not only heard
round the world, but its echoes will resound through
the ages ; and the state which has the credit of com-
mencing the fierce and bloody struggle of i86r, —
that dastardly attempt to overthrow the freest and
best government the world has ever seen — cannot
escape being damned to an infamy for which history
has no parallel.
8 The Story of Company A.
The election of Abraham Lincoln as President of
the United States in 1860, was the signal for an
uprising of the whole Slave Power against the pre-
vailing free-labor sentiment of the Northern People.
The conflict was inevitable, and while the South
was organizing and arming, the North, depend-
ing upon the ability of the Government to protect
itself, was in a measure unprepared for the terrible
and bloody struggle that was soon to follow.
M Massachusetts, however, always watchful for the
chusetts cause of Union and Liberty, was ready to meet the
enemy when its uplifted hand should strike the
blow. Governor John A. Andrew, foreseeing the
approaching storm, wisely provided for the emer-
gency ; and by the promulgation of General Order
General No. 4, in January, 1861, the number of officers and
men of the volunteer militia, who would respond in-
No. 4.
stantly to any call which might be made upon them
by the President of the United States, was ascer-
tained with absolute accuracy.
The Worcester companies, City Guards and Light
Infantry, voted almost unanimously "ready," as did
most of the companies in the state. Subsequent
events proved the wisdom of this order, for almost
before the sound of the first hostile gun ceased its
2$th Regt. Mass. Vols. . 9
reverberations, the militia of the Old Commonwealth
were marching to the relief of our defenseless Cap-
ital.
The men of Worcester, whose patriotism never
failed, were among the first to answer the call to
arms. The Sixth Regiment, with our Worcester
Light Infantry, encountering armed treason in the
streets of Baltimore, gallantly fought their way Tke
through to the city of Washington ; and the ring of Capital
their muskets on the marble floor of the Senate
Chamber gave assurance that the Capital was safe,
and that the conspirators were foiled.
The Third Battalion Rifles, with the Worcester
City Guards, Emmet Guards, and Holden Rifles,- Three
three full companies, proceeding to Annapolis, Md., Months1
and from thence to Fort Me Henry, re-enforcing the en'
handful of regulars there, saved that important po-
sition from capture by the secessionists of Baltimore.
The Fourth, Fifth and Eighth regiments did excel-
lent service at Fortress Monroe, the Relay House,
and in Virginia.
The State of Massachusetts had ever been noted
1 ne
for its excellent militia system, which in point of Militia.
numbers and efficiency, was superior to all others.
There were many people, however, who considered
io The Story of Company A.
it useless and unprofitable. This sentiment was
changed quite rapidly when the danger signal was
sounded ; and its enemies became its most enthu-
siastic friends when they found that these "holiday
soldiers" were ready at a moment's notice to leave
home, friends, business, everything, — going to scenes
of strife and unknown dangers, perhaps never to
return ; but resolved to perform their duty to the
country as soldiers and citizens, regardless of con-
sequences to themselves. The three months' men,
by their courage and- devotion to duty in the hour
of peril, checked the tide of treason, and proved the
sterling worth of our^volunteer militia. Their record
is one which will ever redound to the glory of Massa-
chusetts, and will be prized among her richest his-
toric treasures.
On the 3d day of May, the President issued a
Second proclamation calling for a force of volunteers to serve
can for three years. He appealed to all loyal people to aid
Troops. jn mamtam}ng the nation's honor and integrity. On
the 1 5th of June, the first three years' regiment left
the state, and others followed in rapid succession ;
the Fifteenth left Worcester on the 8th, and the
Twenty-first on the 22nd of August.
Regi. Mass. Vols. 1 1
The return of the Sixth Regiment and Third Bat-
talion, August 2nd, after three months' service, was
. > .... ™, . Return
an occasion tor general rejoicing. 1 hey were given rthe
a perfect ovation by the throngs of people that im- oidSixth.
peded their progress through the streets, with such
demonstrations of welcome as had never been seen
in Worcester before. The boys were glad enough
to get home, but soon became restless, and nearly
all of them re-entered the service, a large number
as officers in the three years' regiments.
The public excitement at this time was intense.
The people were thoroughly aroused. Thousands
of loyal, patriotic men, regardless of politics or na-
tionality, were seeking an opportunity to march to
their imperilled country's defense. They had re-
solved to maintain the honor of the flag and the
unity of the states at all hazards. They only desired
leaders of ability and courage in whom they could
place confidence. Officers of experience were in
demand, and among those whose services were ea-
gerly sought for was Lieut. Pickett of the Worcester Lieut.
City Guards. Previous to the war he had seen con- Pukett'
siderable service in the militia, joining Company F,
Old .Sixth Massachusetts, as early as 1840, and the
Worcester City Guards in 1855. When the first call
1 2 The Story of Company A.
came, in April, 1861, he held a commission as lieu-
tenant in this company. His ready and patriotic
response, while others were hesitating, had made him
conspicuous, and gave him a high reputation as a
soldier of unquestioned ability and courage. Since
his return from the three months' service, he had
been offered the command of the Webster company
in the Fifteenth, and the Barre company in the
Twenty-first, but declined, preferring to remain with
his old associates of the Third Battalion, who were
arranging for the formation of a new regiment. The
plan soon developed, and resulted in an order from
Gov. Andrew, issued Sept. loth, for the organization
of a Worcester County regiment to be designated
the Twenty-fifth ; and Captain Tosiah Pickett was
Regiment.
authorized to recruit COMPANY A for this regiment-
Company
A. Headquarters were immediately opened at Brinley
Hall, then the armory of the Guards, and business
became brisk at once. The best young men in the
city were eager to enlist in the new company under
its popular commander, and quite a number of his
old comrades in Company A, Third Rifles, were
among the first to enroll themselves.
In ten days' time the ranks of the Company were
filled with resolute, courageous young men, and
25th Regt, Mass. Vols. 13
it was waiting orders. On September 26th, orders
1861.
were received to go into camp, and at 10 A. M. the
same day, the company assembled for the last time in
Brinley (now Grand Army) Hall, marched to the
Agricultural Grounds, and went into camp, which camp
was known as "Camp Lincoln." These grounds Lincoln-
had a half-mile race track in the center, and am-
ple sheds for cattle and horses on exhibition days,
with a large building containing halls for the display
of fruit, vegetables, and all farm products. The
whole was enclosed with a high board fence, inside
of which the soldiers were posted on guard duty,
and paced their rounds with all the precision of reg-
ulars. These grounds, which were considered the
largest in Massachusetts, were bounded on the east
by what is now Sever street, on the north by High-
land street, on the west by Agricultural street, and
extended southerly nearly to Cedar street.
The organization of the Company was here com- „
£> r j Company
pleted. Francis E. Goodwin, a young business man organized.
of high character and patriotic purpose, and an old
member of the City Guards, was appointed first
lieutenant. Merrit B. Bessey, who had served with
much credit in Company A, Third Rifles, in the three
months' service, received the appointment of second
1 4 The Story of Company A.
lieutenant ; and the following is the full roster and
1861.
Roster.
roll of the Company :
Age.
Josiah Pickett, Captain, 38
Francis E. Goodwin, ist Lieut., 31
Merrit B. Bessey, 2d ' ' 22
George A. Johnson, ist Sergt., 42
George Burr, Sergt., 26
James M. Hervey, ' '
James J. McLane, ' '
Welcome W. Sprague, ' '
Frank L. R. Coes, Corp.,
Jaalam Gates,
Calvin A. Wesson,
Edwin A. Morse,
Henry M. Ide,
John A. Thompson,
John A. Chenery,
Samuel H. Putnam,
Jubal H. Haven, Musician,
Jesse L. Yeaw,
Sylvanus G. Bullock, Wagoner,
Nathaniel O. Adams, Private,
Samuel C. T. Aborn,
Charles S. Bartlett,
Residence.
Worcester.
23
24
< i
33
< i
23
' *
38
1 '
29
Grafton.
19
Worcester.
30
i <
22
t <
26
27
« '
54
' '
19
Northboro'.
27
Worcester.
23
Boston.
27
Worcester.
19
' «
25th Regt., Mass. Vols.
Age.
George R. Brown, Private,
Moses P. Brown, ' '
Moses L. Bolster, Jr., ' '
Francis B. Brock,
Henry D. Brock,
Hamlin Butterfield,
Horace E. Brooks, ' '
David B. Bigelow,
George W. Bigelow, ' '
Albert N. Bonn,
Cyrus Brumley,
Hiram H. H. Billings,
George E. Curtis, ' '
Samuel S. Dresser, ' '
Reuben H. DeLuce,
Thomas Earle, ' '
Lewis J. Elwell, ' '
Joseph P. Eaton, ' '
Daniel T. Eaton,
Elbridge B. Fairbanks, ' '
Jerome H. Fuller, ' '
Charles Forbes, ' '
Francis Greenwood, ' '
John L. Goodwin, ' '
3
23 Grafton. l86x-
2 1 Worcester. Roil
20 ' ' ofthe
Company.
28 Athol.
19
2 1 Sterling.
26 Worcester.
29
18
24 - [Ct.
24 Jewett City,
2 5 Worcester.
21 ' '
20
22 Boston.
38 Worcester.
18
2 1 Auburn.
3i
30 Worcester.
18
42
22 ' '
20
i6
The Story of Company A.
i86i.
Henry Goulding, 2d, Private,
30
Worcester.
Roll
James M. Green, ' '
2 I
Boston.
of the
Andrew L. George, ' '
21
Worcester.
Company.
Charles Henry, ' '
44
« t
Cyrus L. Hutchins, ' '
30
Edward S. Hewitt,
21
Auburn.
John W. Hartshorn,
22
Worcester.
William E. Holman,
19
Cyrus W. Holman, ' '
21
Edward P. Hall,
19
i <
William R. Keef,
2O
Auburn.
Charles H. Knowlton, ' '
23
Worcester.
Benjamin C. Knowles, ' '
42
Auburn.
Augustus Knowles, ' '
21
Lucius F. Kingman, ' '
19
Northboro'.
Henry F. Knox, ' '
28
Holden.
Walter D. Knox,
22
William L. Lyon,
2O
Worcester.
Charles A. Mayers,
20
Auburn.
B
Charles H. Monroe,
2O
Worcester.
Lloyd G. Manning,
23
i <
George E. Merrill,
23
< t
Daniel M. G. Merrill,
26
« '
Charles Matherson, ' '
25
Boston.
25th Regt., Mass. Vols.
Age.
Chauncey L. Metcalf, Private,
Eli Pike,
George F. Penniman, ' '
Sidney W. Phillips, ' '
Henry H. Pratt,
William W. Putnam,
Orrin Parsons,
Walter H. Richards,
George F. Robinson,
Henry W. Reed,
Amos E. Stearns,
George F. Stearns,
John B. Savage,
George L, Seagrave, ' '
Hiram Staples,
Elijah Simonds,
Charles Smith, ' 4
Paris Smith,
Augustus Stone,
Julius M. Tucker, ' '
Nelson Tiffany, ' '
Chester O. Upham, ' '
Alonzo D. Whitcomb, ' '
Frederick A. White,
36 Worcester. l861
19
22 ' '
Roll
of the
Company.
24
21 Grafton.
21
34 Worcester.
18
21 ' '
18
28
22 Clinton.
25 Worcester.
24 Uxbridge.
20 Douglas.
39 Worcester.
39
A A ' <
44
20 ' '
20 ' '
1 8 Auburn.
35 Worcester.
26
20 ' '
i8
The Story of Company A.
i86i.
Hale Wesson, Private,
19
Grafton.
Roll
James Wesson, ' '
18
< <
of the
Frank Wright, ' '
20
Holden.
Company.
John Wright, ' '
18
Worcester.
Edwin D. Waters,
25
Millbury.
Timothy M. Ward,
19
Worcester.
Cyrus K. Webber,
20
Brookfield.
Total : officers, 3 ; men,
98 =
IOI.
NAMES OF RECRUITS.
Name. Rank.
Age.
Residence.
Abel S. Angell, Private,
18
Boston.
Names of
recruits.
Sidney J. Atkinson,
42
Worcester.
Charles E. Benson,
20
Blackstone.
Walter S. Bugbee,
30
Worcester.
Daniel W. Burt,
24
i «
John P. Coulter,
19
Clinton.
Charles A. Davis,
18
Upton.
Joseph L. Delaney,
33
Auburn.
Horace W. Dryden,
23
Worcester.
Charles Eaton,
22
Gardner.
Timothy Foley,
19
Worcester.
Benjamin C. Green, ^'
25
i <
Reuben Heywood,
21
' *
Charles B. Kendall, ' '
21
25th Regt., Mass. Vols.
James Kerwin,
William R. Leseur,
Horace Lincoln,
Ira Lindsey,
John Madden,
Andrew J. McKinstry,
Bernard McSheny,
John Moore,
George H. Nottage,
Charles O'Neil,
George Packard,
Henry A. Pond,
Lyman J. Prentiss,
Charles D. Roby,
Edward J. Sargent,
George E. Sawyer,
Liberty W. Stone,
James D. Thompson,
Joseph H. Thompson,
Charles E, Wheeler,
James White,
George W. Wood,
William H. Wood,
Private,
Age.
44
19
26
38
44
44
36
18
18
18
24
18
21
19
21
23
38
21
19
39
45
18
18
Worcester. l861-
Milford. Names of
Charlestown. recruits-
Worcester.
« <
Southbridge.
Mendon.
Dudley.
Hopkinton.
Milford.
Fitchburg.
Milford.
Northbridge.
Worcester.
Oakham.
Clinton.
Milford.
Oxford.
Worcester.
Uxbridge.
Worcester.
LJpton.
Number of Recruits, 37.
2O The Story of Company A.
The Twenty-fifth Regiment was a Worcester
County regiment, nearly all of the officers and men
belonging to that section. The commanding officer
was Colonel Edwin Upton, of Fitchburg, forty-five
Colonel years of age, firm and dignified in bearing, genial and
Upton. '
courteous to every one. ror many years connected
with the Massachusetts Militia, he was a thorough
soldier and a brave officer. Resigning on account
of disability after more than a year's service, it is but
little to say that he was beloved by every soldier in
the Regiment. He still lives (April, 1886), a wreck
of his former self, having lost his sight by a terrible
accident while blasting rocks. Peace be with him.
May his end be like the going down of the sun in a
cloudless sky — calm, serene, and beautiful.
The Lieutenant-Colonel was A. B. R. Sprague,
of slight build and gentlemanly appearance, thirty-
'a °ue four years of age, and a resident of Worcester. He,
also, was a militia officer of years of experience,
and served during the three months' campaign as
Captain of Company A (City Guards), in the Third
Battalion Rifles. He was thoroughly familiar with
military tactics, and a strict disciplinarian. He re-
signed after about a year's service in the Twenty-
fifth, and appeared again in the field as Colonel of
2 5th Regt., Mass. Vols. 21
the Fifty-first, a nine months' regiment ; later he was -
Colonel of the Second Massachusetts Heavy Ar-
tillery, and was mustered out of the service in 1865
as Brevet Brigadier-General. He is, at present
writing, living in Worcester, and is still on duty as
Sheriff of the County.
Major Matthew J. McCafferty was thirty-two years
Major
old, and a resident of Worcester. He was one of
the (very) few lawyers of Worcester who, in 1861, ferfy-
locked their office doors, threw away the keys, and
fought under the starry folds of "Old Glory." He
was also a three months' man, serving as Lieutenant
in the Emmet Guards ; and remained with the
Twenty-fifth until after the battles of Roanoke and
New Berne, when he returned home and effectively
aided the cause by furthering enlistments, and de-
livering many patriotic addresses. At the time of
his death, in May, 1885, he was one of the justices
of the Boston Municipal Court.
Our Adjutant was Elijah A. Harkness, twenty-
three years old, and a man of very delicate build for AdJutant
a soldier. He resided in Worcester, and had served
in the three months' campaign as Lieutenant in the
City Guards. He resigned to accept the position
22 The Story of Company A.
of Major in the Fifty-first Regiment. After the war
he went to Chicago, where he died.
The Surgeon was J. Marcus Rice, a well known
burgeon
Rice, physician of Worcester, thirty-four years old. He
was wounded at Roanoke, was afterwards Medical
Director of the Eighteenth Army Corps, and still
later, Medical Inspector of the Army of the James,
serving through the war. He is still in practice in
Worcester, as genial and full of business as ever.
Our Chaplain was Rev. Horace James, Pastor of
„, A, . the Old South Church in Worcester. After the
Lnaplain
James, battle of New Berne he had charge of the freedmen,
and was afterwards Captain and Assistant Quarter-
master, U. S. Vols. He died in 1875.
The Quartermaster, William O. Brown of Fitch-
burg, was forty-six years of age. He was a man —
Quarter-
master everybody liked him — always pleasant, and ever
Brown. ready to do a good turn for the private soldier —
no wonder everybody liked him. He served his
full time of three years, and is now living in Fitch-
burg, holding the office of County Commissioner.
Everybody likes him still.
Let us now glance at life in Camp Lincoln.
CHAPTER II.
AT CAMP LINCOLN.
MEMBERS of the Company, after selecting
tent-mates, quickly adapted themselves to the
routine of camp life. The work of drill and disci- Adapta-
pline now began in earnest. The nucleus of old
soldiers in the ranks of the Company was of great Life.
advantage ; as instructors to the new men they were
invaluable. This was soon manifested in the excel-
lent appearance of the Company on drill or parade.
Company A was assigned the post of honor on the
right of the regimental line.
It was interesting to witness the change from citi-
zens to soldiers. Camp life was new to the major-
ity of the Company, but after a few days of the regu-
lar company drill, and a few nights of sleeping in
tents, the novelty wore off ; and when the time came
to break camp, it was hard to distinguish the three
months men from those of less experience.
4
24 The Story of Company A.
Company A, being the right flank company, was
drilled in the bayonet exercise, and also the skir-
mish drill. These evolutions always attracted a crowd
of spectators from the numbers which thronged the
grounds, and were performed with the greatest en-
thusiasm by the Company daily. As to amusements
while in Camp Lincoln, it must be confessed that
Amuse- ^g. crowds of visitors were so great that there was
little time to attend to any ; still athletic exercises
were indulged in to some extent. Boxing, gymnas-
tics, and running races around the half-mile track
were daily practiced. The weather was delightful
during the stay of the Twenty-fifth at Camp Lincoln ;
and although the nights were often cold and frosty,
the days were clear and bright. The recollection of
those crisp, sparkling October days of 1861 comes
back to us like the memory of a pleasant dream.
The tents used by the Company m Camp Lincoln
were A tents, and were intended to hold six men
Tents.
each, with all their equipments. This was rather
crowding things, and a good deal like packing sar-
dines in a box ; still it was taken as a matter of course,
and the inconvenience submitted to in perfect good
nature. These tents were, some time after, ex-
changed for Sibley tents, — much more comfortable
2 5th Regt., Mass. Vols. 25
— later for shelter tents, and at last, while before
e 11 l86l.
Petersburg, for no tents at all.
The streets in Camp Lincoln were named. Our
company street was designated, as the signboard
read, "Pickett Avenue," in honor of our Captain. Camp
The tents bore names according to the whims of the "
occupants. One was known as "Rovers' Lodge,"
another as "Whispering House," probably because
it was the noisiest tent on the street. There were
"Upton's Hotel," "Orphans' Home" and others.
These were amusing to visitors and created a deal
of merriment as they read the names. So with drill-
ing four or five hours daily, jjuard mounting, dress
parade, inspection, and crowds of visitors, the days
passed rapidly away.
On the i jth of October we were mustered into
the service of the United States by Captain I. M.
* J in.
Goodhue, and were citizens no longer. Clothing
was served out to us at this time, and bidding adieu
to citizens' attire for three years, we were arrayed
in the blue of Uncle Sam ; and with the ungainly
black regulation hat, and clumsy overcoat and bro-
gans, the transformation from citizens to soldiers was
complete. The brogans caused a deal of fun among
the boys, and some were loth to give up the nice*-
26 The Story of Company A.
fitting- civilian's boot, and tried to fight it out on that
line ; but the brogan conquered, and it was found by
experience that the army shoe with its wide sole,
and its broad, low heel, was the best thing for march-
ing. Our rifles were soon after received, and we
now fancied ourselves soldiers indeed.
Each soldier was entitled to clothing as follows :
clothing Qne dress /frock) coat of dark blue cloth, with brass
of the
Soldier, buttons ;. one fatigue jacket, dark blue, coarser cloth,
brass buttons ; pants and overcoat of light blue ;
woolen shirts and drawers, blue-mixed or gray ; solid
sewed brogans tied with leather strings ; and finally
the broad-brimmed black felt hat, turned up on the
left with a brass eagle to fasten it in that position ;
and the blue cap with a broad visor, with the number
of the regiment and the letter of the company on
the crown, which sloped towards the visor. Such
was the clothing of the soldier of 1861 at Camp Lin-
coln. He also drew a large, brown U. S. blanket
and a rubber blanket.
In his every-day or working dress while in Camp
Lincoln, our soldier wore his blue jacket with brass
buttons, his pants of light blue, and cap with broad
visor ; and with his woolen shirt, drawers, stockings
and brogans, he was, if not a handsome, at least a
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 27
comfortable looking- soldier. At dress parade, in-
, . , , 1861.
spections and reviews, he wore his blue dress coat,
and the ugly black felt hat turned up at the side,
instead of the blue jacket and fatigue cap.
This is, as we call him up from memory, the way
our Company A soldier was dressed at Camp Lin-
coln. As we stood in line in heavy marching order, /»
we were dressed in our best, with equipments Q^tMarcktn
Order.
rifles to the shoulder, and knapsacks on our backs.*
The knapsack contained all we possessed in the way
of extra clothing, and the overcoat, while in a neat
roll on its top was the woolen blanket with the rub-
ber blanket outside. The haversack contained a .tin
plate, knife, fork, spoon, and a tin cup holding a
quart. The canteen filled with water was indispen-
sable. Now, for the moment, if we look at him Three
three years later, we shall find something of a later
change in his appearance. He is in the trenches
before Petersburg during that terrible summer of
1864. His knapsack is gone — they were all stored
in Portsmouth during the Petersburg campaign.
The ugly black hat with its brass eagle has disap-
peared ; that vanished in Carolina long ago. Over-
*.The total weight of arms, equipments and extra clothing carried by each
soldier was about forty-five pounds. It is safe to say that the knapsacks were
never again loaded so heavily as at this time.
28 The Story of Company A.
coats have nearly all departed, and very few have
woolen blankets. Thus we see the veteran stripped
to the very lightest possible fighting trim ; the clothes
which he has on, his equipments, his trusty old En-
field rifle, his haversack containing plate and other
utensils, canteen and rubber blanket, are all that he
carries with him. The last is rolled lengthwise and
thrown over the neck like a horse collar,' with the ends
tied together hanging down the left side. The wool-
en blanket, if he possessed one, was rolled within the
other. That is all that is left of our soldier now.
Tents there are none ; he sleeps on the ground in
the open air. His comrades are many of them dead,
in rebel prisons, sick, and scattered far away — but I
anticipate.
On the 2 ist of October the regimental baggage
Prepara-
tions for wagons arrived, twelve in all, besides the hospital
Depart- teams, and the lonesome looking ambulances. On
UTC*
the 3Oth, the Regiment was reviewed by Governor
Andrew and staff, the grounds being crowded with
spectators. The Governor made a stirring address
to the soldiers, and complimented the Regiment on
its fine and soldierly appearance.
On the 3 ist of October orders were given to break
camp. Now all was excitement ; the packing of
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 29
knapsacks — and they were never so solidly packed
again ; orders quickly given and as quickly obeyed ;
the hum of hurried conversation, and bursts of
laughter from the different tents — all denoted that
we were to move. A collation provided by Wor-
cester ladies was served in the Hall, a good part of
the rations which were on the tables quietly finding'
* Rations
a place in the haversacks of the soldiers. Rations ? {„
— army rations ? — nay, verily ; generous, kind, too Cam?
kind, friends of the soldiers allowed us to eat very
little of army rations while at Camp Lincoln. In-
deed, it seemed as if we had everything but army
rations. It was a different story a few days after —
nothing but army rations then. Pies, cakes, butter,
and all the various knicknacks of civilized cookery
vanished, and the substantial salt horse and hard
tack came to the front, and came to stay. After all,
the ordinary bill of fare of the private soldier, com-
pared with that of his civilized friends, was the
healthier of the two.
The men were now placed in position around their
respective tents ; at a given signal every tent fell as
if by magic, and Camp Lincoln was numbered among
the things that were. Regimental line was formed
about three o'clock, and as we stood there in heavy
30 The Story of Company A.
marching order, it certainly appeared more like busi-
ness ; and it seemed hardly possible that these men,
tanned by a month's exposure to the open air, could
be the same pale-faced ones who first appeared in
citizens' dress at Camp Lincoln.
Passing out of the western gate, the principal
entrance to the grounds, we moved through Agricul-
March tural and Highland streets, and wheeling into Main
the aty. street, marched company front to the Common,
where the train was waiting for us on the Norwich
railroad. The most intense excitement prevailed
throughout the city. Such crowds of people filled
the streets as to impede the march of the Regiment ;
every window had its anxious interested faces ; roofs
of buildings were crowded with excited men ; cheers
from the crowds responded to with cheers from the
Regiment ; the waving of handkerchiefs and flags ;
and the stirring strains of the Regimental Band —
all tended to make it one of the most exciting scenes
we had ever witnessed.
Oct. 31. At 4 P. M., the train was in motion, and amid deaf-
ure ening cheers and fluttering of handkerchiefs, moved
rapidly off. Fainter grew the cheering and soon
died away ; and the soldiers, excited as they were
when they entered the cars, soon quieted down, and
Regt., Mass, Vols, 31
it was easy to see there were sober, earnest, thought-
ful faces among them. Where are we going ? How
many of us will return ? Shall we find them all at _
J Thoughts.
home if we do return ? These thoughts undoubt-
edly filled the minds of many of the boys as the train
sped rapidly on, and the shades of night gathered
around ; and it is sad indeed to think after the lapse
of so many years, how many of that thousand men
did not return.
Allyn's Point was reached about 9, and soon after
midnight the Regiment embarked on board the
steamer Connecticut for New York. We had ample
accomodations on ti\efloors of the steamboat, and
with our woolen blankets and overcoats were very
comfortable. We had a quiet passage to New York,
which place we reached about nine o'clock on the ^^ y0rk
morning of November i. Marching down Broad- Ci*y-
way, company front, sweeping the street from side-
walk to sidewalk, band playing, and the whole Regi-
ment singing "John Brown's body lies mouldering
in the grave," we had another exciting scene before
us. Broadway, always a crowded thoroughfare, was
literally packed with people, and the Regiment was
received with the greatest enthusiasm. Reaching
the City Hall Park, we were provided with breakfast
5
32 The Story of Company A.
- in the dingy-looking buildings known as the Park
Barracks. • These rough buildings, dirty on the out-
Park SJ^GI nad interiors repulsive, with anything but a
pleasant air about them ; and the breakfast was not
of the most inviting character. Perhaps Massachu-
setts soldiers were a little particular, but that break-
fast was untouched by many of Company A.
Late in the afternoon we left the Park Barracks,
and marching through crowded streets again to the
ferry, were soon in Jersey City, and entering the cars
went whirling away towards the Land of Brotherly
Love. Philadelphia was reached about midnight,
deiphia. and what a surprise awaited us here. We were
marched to the famous Cooper Shop, where thou-
sands of soldiers passing through Philadelphia were
fed weekly all through the war. What a contrast
to the Park Barracks of New York City. Here was
a large, brilliantly lighted hall, with long rows of
Cooper
Shop, tables loaded down with the greatest abundance of
well-cooked food : tea, coffee, cold meats, bread
and butter, pies, etc., that brought exclamations of
delight from the hungry lips of the tired soldiers ;
and not only were the soldiers themselves filled, but
many a haversack went from the Cooper Shop full
to bursting. Neatly dressed, pleasant-faced young
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 33
ladies and gentlemen were in attendance, and met
with a smile the hurried questions of a crowd of
rough soldiers. Wash basins with cool water and
clean towels were plenty ; and a thousand soldiers
marched through Philadelphia that night breathing
a thousand blessings on the Cooper Shop, its found-
er, and its genial, kind-hearted attendants.
In marching across the city to the Baltimore De-
pot, the regimental band-playing and the soldiers'
singing awoke the echoes of the Quaker City, and
many of its inhabitants. Windows were hastily
thrown up as the Regiment passed, and cheers from Marc/t
the houses were drowned by rousing cheers from
the soldiers. Handkerchiefs were waved, and often
articles of white much larger than handkerchiefs
were shaken from upper story windows. On the
whole, the midnight march through Philadelphia was
an enthusiastic one ; and the Massachusetts soldiers
felt like showering blessings on the inhabitants of
the city of William Penn.
In the early morning, about four o'clock, we were
once more in the cars, pushing on towards Baltimore.
It was nearly noon, November 2d, when the train
reached Havre de Grace, and we were taken across
the Susquehanna River on the huge ferry boat at
34 The Story of Company A.
that place. This boat took at one trip the whole
train, with its passengers (one thousand soldiers)
and all their traps. At this time it was raining hard,
and the weather continued wet and unpleasant till
Baltimore was reached. *We found the railroad
guarded by soldiers (the first we had seen on duty)
Railroad from Havre de Grace to Baltimore, a picket guard
Guards.
being stationed at every bridge and crossing. Bal-
timore was reached about three in the afternoon,
and in a driving rain we marched to the steamboat
landing, and went on board the steamer Louisiana,
expecting to sail at once ; but for some reason we
did not move until the next day, Company A being
quartered on the steamer for the night.
Sunday morning at nine we sailed for Annapolis.
We could see little of Baltimore from the steamer,
save Federal Hill, which had been fortified, and was
held by Duryea's Zouaves. We steamed along past
Fort McHenry and Fort Carroll, where some of the
Company A boys had been posted during the three
nnaP° 1S months' service, and reached Annapolis about noon,
reached.
marching directly to the Academy buildings near by.
Here we found many friends, for the Twenty-first
Massachusetts Regiment was on duty here, and we
of the Twenty-fifth fared well at their hands.
2$th Regt., Mass. Vols. 35
Our Chaplain, Rev. Horace James, with Chaplain
Ball of the Twenty-first, held religious services in
the afternoon. The grounds belonging to the Na-
val Academy, though in a sad state of neglect at
this time, were, when in order and properly cared
for, very neat and attractive ; but the Naval School
had been removed to Newport, R. I., and the build-
ings were now used as barracks for soldiers.
On Monday, November 4th, we marched through
the streets of Annapolis, about two miles from the
place of landing, to a large, pleasant field on the
farm of one Taylor, where our tents were pitched in Camp
regular form. This was our first camp since leaving
Camp Lincoln, and we will defer our account of the
incidents here to another chapter.
CHAPTER III.
CAMP HICKS.
CAMP at Annapolis was known as "Camp
1861. Hicks," from the loyal Governor of Maryland of
Camp tnat name- At this time the Fifty-first New York
Hicks, was the only regiment on the ground. Here we
began to find out what army rations were, and
everything was more like business. We drilled seven
or eight hours daily, and Company A was worked
hard as skirmishers, and in the bayonet exercise.
We occupied the same A tents as at Camp Lincoln.
Camp Hicks was very pleasantly situated, and for-
tunately we had good water — a very important item
in camp life — which was obtained from a sort of
ravine at the rear of the camp, through which flowed
a small sluggish stream. A hole was dug in the
ground, and a barrel with the ends knocked out
sunk down into it ; this furnished a supply for one
company. We rigged up a well-sweep — a gentle
2 5th Regt., Mass. Vols. 37
reminder of New England — only in place of the
"Old Oaken Bucket" we had an old iron kettle,
which answered the same purpose. The first few
days in Camp Hicks were rather tough for us ; for
some reason no straw had been obtained to sleep
on, and although we spread our rubber blankets on
the ground, and had woolen blankets and overcoats,
still the rubber blanket, while it kept out the damp-
ness, would not keep out the chill from the ground,
which- is as bad. The consequence was, very many
of the boys caught severe colds and were coughing Colds and
continually for some time after. It is a curious fact
that, after these colds were gotten rid of, we seldom
heard of such a thing as a cough in the Company
during the whole time of service.
The first few days in Camp Hicks there appeared
to be some trouble about the rations ; and when, Trouble
one day, we had raw salt pork and hard tack for about
dinner, with water to drink, and another day no din-
ner at all, we could not help longing for the Phila-
delphia Cooper Shop and its pleasant attendants.
But all this was straightened out after a little time.
We soon had plenty of straw for our beds, hot cof-
fee, and soft bread for breakfast and supper, and
either salt beef or pork with beans, rice or potatoes
38 The Story of Company A.
- for dinner, in abundance and nicely cooked. It was
1861. . .
army rations now (except an occasional box from
home), and henceforth to the end. Probably no
soldiers in the world were ever so well provided
for as were our men of the North during the Re-
bellion.
Speaking from experience as a private soldier in
the ranks of Company A, I must say that the rations
were excellent, and the clothing first-class. When-
we drew any article of clothing not up to the
Supplies,
mark, or anything in the way of rations that was not
good, as wormy hard tack or poor salt beef, it was
the rare exception, and not the rule by any means.
Life at Camp Hicks glided quietly away. We
had enough to do, certainly, with six to eight hours
drill daily, inspections, reviews, target shooting, &c.;
Camp but we found time to write, and time for amusements
Life' such as they were — card-playing and smoking, crib-
bage, reading and writing, covering about the whole
ground ; and a stroll through the camp at any hour
of the day was sure to find more or less smoking,
and in the evening after supper, card-playing and
other indoor amusements were in order. It was a
pleasing sight to look into one of the small A tents
after nightfall, and see a bayonet stuck in the ground
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 39
in the center, with a lighted candle inserted in the -
1861.
end, to light up the not over roomy canvas ; and a
merry group of half a dozen card players busy with
their cards, and of course their pipes. What fun
for them ; hear them laugh and shout ; now a song
in which they all join, now a story. Thus they while
the hours away.
The weather during November and December
was very pleasant for the most part, — much like the
October weather of New England ; but it grew cold-
er, and on the morning of December id we
% Weather.
the ground frozen quite hard, and water in pails out-
side the tents had frozen about half an inch. This
set the boys to contriving ways to warm the tents,
and after some experimenting they hit upon a plan
something like this. A pit was dug in the center of
the tent perhaps eighteen inches deep, and as large HOW the
as could be nicely covered with a flat stone. This Tents
pit was sometimes lined with stones somewhat after ..
Warmed.
the style of a well, to keep the earth from caving in.
From the bottom of the pit a hole was dug to the
outside of the tent, in front or to one side, for the
entrance of fresh air ; then from near the top of the
pit a hole was made to the outside of the tent in the
rear, as an outlet for the smoke ; over this hole out-
6
4O The Story of Company A.
side a chimney was built of mud and sticks, or a
barrel which answered as well, and the thing was
complete. Now build a fire in the pit, cover the
top with the flat stone, and the Lord willing, and
the wind in the right direction, what smoke did not
find its way into the tent might possibly go out of
the chimney. This experiment was, perhaps, fairly
successful, and some tents were made quite warm
in this way.
The sergeants' tent was a regular officers' or wall
tent, with a fly or large sheet of canvas drawn over
the top, making a sort of double roof. This tent
was occupied by the five sergeants of Company A,
and the cook ; and a right merry crowd it was. The
Sergeant ^rst or orderly sergeant was George A. Johnson, a
Johnson. man over forty years of age, of soldierly bearing, dark
complexion, black hair and full black beard streaked
with gray, eyes black as midnight, well read, full of
fun, and the best story-teller in the Twenty-fifth
Regiment. "Old Posey" was his pet name. Con-
nected with the militia many years, he was a thorough
soldier, and served in the three months' campaign.
He was promoted to a lieutenancy in the Twenty-fifth
Regiment, was wounded at Cold Harbor, and after
the war enlisted in the regular service, and was on
Regt., Mass. Vols. 41
duty on the northern frontier at the time of the Fe-
nian raid in 1866. He died in 1881. We shall see
him again before the story is told.
The second sergeant was George Burr, — "Birdie"
we called him. Burr was the pony* sergeant of eBurr
Company A. He was also a three months man,
twenty-six years old, of pleasant, cheerful disposi-
tion, and a perfect pink of neatness — a gentleman
as well as a soldier. He was promoted to a second
lieutenancy, was wounded at Cold Harbor, and was
mustered out at the end of the three years as first
lieutenant in the Twenty-fifth. He is, at present
writing, engaged in a successful business in Wor-
cester, and is as cheerful and pleasant as ever.
The third sergeant was James J. McLane. Jimmy
or "Jemsy," as we called him, was of Irish extraction, Sergeant
twenty-four years old, tall, straight as a ramrod, a McLane-
splendid soldier and a genial, social comrade. He,
too, served with credit in the three months' service,
and was promoted to be lieutenant in a "Buffalo"
regiment (North Carolina Union troops), where he
achieved honor and a name ; and was mustered out
as captain in that regiment at the end of the war.
* ".Pony," i. e. short in stature. The men at the left of the Company were
of course the shortest, and hence "ponies."
42 The Story of Company A.
Jemsy is now, and has been for years, on the Wor-
cester police force, and his tall form can be seen
"on duty" any day in the streets of Worcester as he
walks his beat.
The fourth sergeant was another three, months
Sergeant
sprague. man, Welcome W. Sprague. He was provost ser-
geant, and did not do duty with the Company. He
was of a social nature, and could ill be spared from
the merry ring of sergeants of Company A. He
died in New York City in 1884.
Sergeant Of the fifth sergeant at Camp Hicks it becometh
Putnam. me to say little. He was by name Samuel H. Put-
nam, by calling a clerk, with no knowledge whatever
of military affairs at time of enlistment, but possibly
an average soldier. It can be said of him that he
was reliable ; and he was with Company A in all its
wanderings, and one of the four out of the hundred
men who started with the Company that went
through all its marches and all its battles to the final
muster out. After the war he engaged in business
as bookseller, and has followed it in the same shop
to the present time, a period of twenty years. We
shall see him again.
The cook was Charles Henry — "Uncle Henry" we
The Cook.
called him — forty-four years old, — too old for a sol-
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 43
dier. He was a heavy built man, dark and swarthy,
rough spoken, but good hearted, and much liked by
the men.
Lite in the sergeants' tent at Camp Hicks was
very pleasant. The tent was much larger than the Tgnt
A tent, and with the same number of men to occupy
it, gave ample room for a table and seats, and also
a stove, which as the weather grew colder, made
cheerful and comfortable quarters. A dainty set of
lads were the sergeants of Company A. They had
a coffee pot of their own, and ye gods ! what coffee
.came from that tin pot. Sergeant Sprague being
provost sergeant was relieved from company duty,
and it was for him to see that our breakfast was got
up properly, and well he performed the service.
Coffee always hot, bread toasted, good butter (not
an army ration) that we bought, and other luxuries,
— "who wouldn't be a soger?" Our stove worked
admirably, and with plenty of blankets, table, stools,
&c., the sergeants' tent of Company A was as com-
plete and comfortable as the ingenuity of its occu-
pants could make it.
As time went on, Christmas, 1861, dawned on us
still at Camp Hicks. Inspection in the forenoon, r""'
and a holiday in the afternoon. Cards and pipes
44 The Story of Company A.
are in the ascendant to-day. It is plain to see that
coffee, cards and tobacco are the three great essen-
January.
tials to a soldier's life.
A few days before Christmas we had a pay-day,
Ftrst at which Greenbacks made their first appearance ;
Green-
backs. and Gold made its last appearance to the soldier in
January, 1862.
January i, 1862, the New Year was ushered in
by a snow squall. January 2d, at brigade drill, we
had a sort of mimic battle, and Company A acted as
New
Year, skirmishers, using blank cartridges. The Company
received some praise for its good work.
On Saturday, January 4th, we received orders to
strike tents Monday morning, so at six o'clock A. M.
of that day, we turned out, and the tents were struck.
It had snowed during the night, and the snow was
still falling as the line was formed ; it seemed quite
like a New England winter morning. After firing
Goodbye 2L parting salute we marched away from Camp Hicks,
to amp Wj1jcj1 hac[ Deen our home for two months. Reach -
Hicks.
ing Annapolis we went, after much delay, on board
the steamer New York. Company I, Capt. Park-
hurst, went on board the schooner Skirmisher ;
companies D and H on board the gunboat Zouave ;
and the New York took the other seven companies
2$th Regt., Mass. Vols. 45
of the Regiment. When all was ready on board the
New York, the steamer pushed out a mile or so into
the stream and came to anchor. We now had time
to look around us, and a busy scene it was to gaze
upon. The sleepy old town of Annapolis had not
ssen so much life in a century. Large numbers of
vessels of all descriptions, — steamers, sailing craft,
tugboats, moving about in all directions ; others at
the various landings, loading or unloading, — all com-
bined to make a busy picture such as the old town
will not see for another century. This was the
preparation for the famous Burnside Expedition.
CHAPTER IV.
THE BURNSIDE EXPEDITION.
_ JT WAS NOT until about 8 A. M. of January gth,
1862. 1862, that the Burnside Expedition finally left the
Jan. 9. old town of Annapolis, and moved grandly out into
Sailing tjie waters Of Chesapeake Bay, the steamer New
of the
Brunswick, with Gen. Foster and staff on board,
the lead ; the New York, with the Twenty-
fifth Massachusetts, being second in line. Gen.
Burnside modestly took the small steamer Picket
for his headquarters. There were over one hundred
vessels in the expedition, and a grander sight could
hardly be imagined than was presented as it sailed
away from Annapolis town. Numbers of the steam-
ers had sailing vessels in tow, and the New York
had an old canal boat towing astern, which bore the
ominous name of Bomb Shell. It was one of the
fairest of fair days, and with flags and streamers fly-
ing, bands playing, and soldiers cheering, it seemed
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 47
more like a monster holiday excursion than the start-
r . ., -,. . 1862.
mg of a hostile expedition.
There had been, of course, much surmising about
the destination of the expedition, and all sorts of
guesses were made, but nothing definite was known
in regard to it excepting that we were to rendezvous
at Fortress Monroe. On the steamer New York,
Company A occupied the upper cabin forward ; the
sergeants occupying a state room close by. The
morning was rainy, but in the afternoon it cleared
away and we had a good part of the fleet in sight,
sailing in a long line, each vessel in its proper place.
Evening came on clear and bright with a beautiful
moonlight, but a heavy fog afterwards arose, and we
came to anchor near the mouth of the Potomac and
remained there all night.
The morning of January loth opened heavy with
fog, but it cleared up about nine, and we proceeded
on our way. Soon Fortress Monroe was in sight, ,
* Monroe.
with a crowd of vessels ; and as we came nearer we
passed several American men of war, the Minnesota,
Jamestown, Roanoke, and one Frenchman. The
jolly tars greeted us with rousing cheers from the
rigging of their vessels as we passed, to which we
responded most heartily. About noon we anchored
7
48 The Story of Company A.
in Hampton Roads. This, then, was the grand ren-
dezvous for the Burnside Expedition.
From the decks of the steamboat could be seen
the ruins of Hampton Village burned by the
Evidences rebels, and near by, the old Fortress looking very
r' quiet but showing some ugly teeth in the shape of
big guns, and a large number of them. Opposite
the Fort is Sewall's Point and the Rip-Raps, while
Norfolk is not far away. Some distance in the rear
of Fortress Monroe we saw tents and barracks, which
denoted large bodies of soldiers gathered here.
4
It was about noon of January i2th, 1862, that the
fleet of Burnside sailed from Fortress Monroe,
and passing between Capes Charles and Henry,
soon headed south ; and many were talking of the
Carolina coast as the destination of the expedition.
The wind blew quite fresh as we passed out of the
Coast bay into the Atlantic, and it was interesting to see
Voyage. jlow some sailing vessels went past us, and in a very
short time. Keeping the coast in sight we pushed
on till dark when we came to anchor, and on the
morning of the I3th hastened on, with an angry sky
over us and a heavy sea tossing us about, and
causing many of the soldiers to pay the customary
tribute to old Neptune. Still keeping in sight of
2$th Regt., Mass. Vols. 49
land, we steamed on rounding Cape Hatteras, and in
the early afternoon reached Hatteras Inlet. A small
tug-boat, dancing on the waves like a cork, met us
near the entrance to the Inlet ; we followed close in
its wake, and were soon safely anchored in the waters
of Pamlico Sound, in close proximity to a rebel earth-
work known as Fort Clark, which had been captured
by Butler. Meantime the storm had burst upon us,
and was now raging turiously ; and we considered
ourselves fortunate in getting in as we did. The
vessels of the fleet came in rapidly like frightened
sea-birds before the tempest blast, and we began to
be crowded here at our anchorage ground. We saw
a large ocean steamer attempt to enter the Inlet,
strike on the bar outside, and sink. Tug-boats were
sent to her assistance but could render none, and
there she remained till next day when boats were
again sent out and succeeded in bringing off the
crew of the steamer, which proved to be the City of
New York. The vessel and cargo were a total loss.
It was certainly a wild picture to look upon. In
every direction the waves were running high, and Gloomy
tossing the vessels about in the wildest confusion ;
and, night settled down over the scene with an in-
creasing fury in the howling storm. Few turned
50 The Story of Company A.
in that night without gloomy forebodings for the
1862.
morrow.
Tuesday, January i4th, found, as was anticipated,
an increasing tempest, and the vessels of the fleet
all too close together for safety. This morning a
Great steamer came crashing down upon us, running her
bows into the afterpart of the New York, and ripping
clean off one side of the after cabin in which our
band slept, making it lively for them for a few min-
utes. Soon after, another steamer came thumping
away at our bows, smashing things ; and between
the two the old New York was pretty badly used.
The night before, the gunboat Zouave, having on
board two companies of the Twenty-fifth Regiment,
got to thumping on her own anchor — as report has
it — jammed a hole in her bottom, and this morning;
Disasters. J
sunk. The men were taken off, but boat and cargo
were lost. Signals of distress were flying in all di-
rections, and it looked bad for Burnside's fleet. Be-
sides, it was reported that there was a bar inside
which had only seven and a half feet of water on it,
and our largest vessels, of which the New York was
one, drew over eight feet. Things looked dark
enough now, certainly.
2$th Regt. , Mass. Vols. 5 1
January i5th the storm still continued, and we
had a gunboat alongside us grinding up the fancy
work on the old New York, but doing no great dam-
age. To-day we noticed several soldiers were buried
on the sandy shore, waves and winds making wild
funeral music. Jan. i6th the colonel and surgeon of
the Ninth New Jersey were drowned by the upsetting c tinued
of their boat. The storm continued to rage on the Disaster.
1 7th, and the steamer Suwanee got aground, and
one schooner sunk. January :8th, we counted 120
vessels in the inlet, all badly crowded in this dis-
mal, god-forsaken hole. Gen. Burnside came along
to-day, looking as cheerful as if all was going well.
A wonderful courage that man must have had.
The storm at last subsided, and it was very fort-
unate, for our rations were running- low. Hard
abates.
bread, the great staple, held out, and coffee, too,
though the daily allowance of each was short.
Worst of all the water gave out, and a heavy rain
was a godsend ; for all of the rain water that could
be caught was saved in barrels by the steamboat
officers, and stolen — a great deal of it — by the sol-
diers of the Twenty-fifth. We had a nice way of
filling our canteens from the water casks of the
steamboat. Before leaving Worcester our too kind
5 2 The Story of Company A.
friends had provided many of the soldiers with
"drinking tubes," a new thing — patented of course
— possessing wonderful properties. It consisted of
a small flexible rubber tube, perhaps two and a half
feet long, with a mouth-piece at one end and a mar-
Patent velous patent strainer or filter at the other. Place
Drinking tne strainer in the muddiest of ditch water, insert
the mouth-piece between the lips of the thirsty sol-
dier, and by applying the science of suction, from
the most stagnant and slimy pool nothing but the
purest cool spring water would be drawn into the
soldier's stomach. Consequently no sickness would
arise from drinking any water found on the marches.
Consequently a great number of lives would be pre-
served, millions of money saved, the strength of the
Union armies increased, and the Rebellion crushed
a great deal quicker. Consequently every soldier
should have one in his knapsack, and all for the
trifling sum of twenty-five cents. It is difficult to
estimate how much sooner the Rebellion would have
been quelled if all the Union soldiers had been sup-
plied with drinking tubes. I never saw the tubes
used save on one march ; some half dozen soldiers
attempted to use them, but the effort was a failure ;
and they whirled the tubes into the bushes, with
25th Regt-, Mass. Vols. 53
the remark : "Damn the things," an expression too
1862.
common among the soldiers. However, the drink-
ing tubes worked well in filling canteens from the
water casks of the steamboat ; by inserting one end in- ...^
to the bunghole of the barrel, and getting the water water.
started we had a very good syphon, and the canteens
were filled quickly, and what was better, without
noise. As the water got low in the barrel, we added
another length of "drinking tube"; and in this way
we obtained fresh water until the discovery of the
trick put an end to that little scheme.
We had at last to resort to water distilled from
salt water. This was done on the gunboats. It was
warm and sickish when first obtained, though quite
palatable when cold. As the storm subsided boats
got along with rations, and we fared better during
our stay at Hatteras.
On the 2ist of January, private Tucker of Com-
pany B, died and was buried ashore. On the 28th
comrade George E. Curtis of Company A died. He
was sent to the Hospital Ship, and died there. This
was the first death in Company A. He was twenty- Death
one years old, of a quiet, retiring disposition, and in the
his loss was keenly felt by his tentmates. He was a>
buried in a little church yard about three miles from
us, and his grave marked with a wooden slab.
54 The Story of Company A.
Life on the steamer New York was not, to draw
it mild, of the most enjoyable sort. Eight hundred
soldiers with all their traps, on one steamboat (al-
though ours was a large one) was crowding things ;
and add to that the terrible stormy weather, running
Monotony short of rations, water giving out, and other incon-
on the veniences> it was indeed a tedious life ; and all sorts
New York
of expedients were resorted to in the endeavor to
wear away the time. In the officers' quarters they
got up theatricals with songs, music, etc., while the
private soldiers amused themselves by writing letters
home, reading, smoking, playing cards, and stealing
from the sutler. Lieut. McConville came into the
quarters of the men occasionally, and with Private
Fairbanks of Company A, sung many songs which
gave great delight to the boys and were fully ap-
preciated by them. January 25th they began to get
Passage vessels over the bar, the lighter ones crossing with-
the Qut mucn trouble. This is a great place for wrecks.
Bar.
We counted thirteen between Cape Hatteras and the
Inlet as we passed along, and we added to the
number. The ill-fated steamer, City of New York,
went to pieces to-day, and a large number of casks
of powder came floating by us from her wreck, and
were picked up by the crew of our steamer.
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 55
On the 22nd of January we steamed about a quar-
ter of a mile further into the bay to escape the crowd-
ing of the vessels, and to prepare to cross the bar.
In a dark night to look out on the fleet around us Night
was like looking at a factory village in the evening,
the large vessels appearing like cotton mills lighted
up. We were lying near the Northerner, with the
Twenty-first Massachusetts on board ; and a day or
two after she swung around and gave us a pretty
smart raking. Our rations run short again, and a
supper of hard-tack and brakish water is not, to say
the least, like the supper at the Philadelphia Cooper
Shop. But soldiers make merry over such things,
and Old Posey said grace over our dinner of a few
hard-tack : "We thank thee, Oh Quartermaster
Brown, for the bountiful supply of hard-tack thou
hast seen fit to bestow upon us, but for God's sake
sprinkle in a little soft bread with it, or there wont
be a tooth left in the Twenty-fifth Regiment."
Our Orderly was a man of varied talents. He
had been a great reader in his day, and was pos-
sessed of one of those frightful memories that retain
everything they once grasp. In his younger days
he came under the notice of Old Doctor John Green
of Worcester, who took an interest in him, and gave
8
56 The Story of Company A.
him the run of his library. Johnson profited by this,
and would talk about and quote from books of which
probably nine-tenths of the regiment had never
heard. He would repeat whole chapters from the
Bible, and many poems. Old Posey had a great
talent with his pencil, and fairly reveled in carica-
ture ; and while at Annapolis made drawings of sev-
eral of the officers of the Regiment, very nicely exe-
cuted, but a slight touch of his pencil converted them
Old into broad burlesques. One day on the steamer
Posers
habits. New York, while at Hatteras Inlet, he got hold of
a sermon by Rev. Mr. Cutler of Worcester, entitled
"The Right of the Sword." He gave it a very
careful reading, pronounced it "a pretty damned
good thing," and went to playing the game of sol-
taire with his greasy old pack of cards, which kept
him quiet for hours. Old Posey was a mixture of
queer materials, rough outside, but a kind heart
within. He was greatly addicted to smoking, card
playing, Bible reading, and profanity. We shall see
him at Cold Harbor.
On the 26th of January we went on board the
small steamer Pilot Boy, and were taken to the ferry
boat Eagle, where we spent a few days 'of wretched-
ness, with little to eat, and crowded almost beyond
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 57
endurance. We could only anxiously wait for the
New York to be worked over the bar that we might
return to our old quarters. An incident occurred
on the Eagle at this time — incidents are always oc-
curring in a soldier's life — that was quite amusing.
Our sutler (H. O. Clark) had left a barrel of sugar A stray
on board the New York, and strange to say, there
seemed to be no one to look after it. Consequently
it was removed with the soldiers and their traps to
the Eagle — a very bad place to put a barrel of sugar.
It was discovered at once by the boys, the barrel
head was knocked in, tin cups appeared as by magic,
and in a "short space of period" as the boys would
say, an empty sugar barrel was tossed into the sea ;
and every haversack on the boat was puffed out with
its sweet contents. Soldiers always know how to
take advantage of circumstances — this was a circum-
stance. This barrel of sugar was quite a find for us.
We used \£> find %. great many things just this way.
Stealing ? Oh no ; it was considered perfectly square
to find things from the sutler. He got it all back,
and more too, in his charges for what honest soldiers
bought of him. It was a common case of "Now you
see jt, and now you don't," — this sugar business — a
law, by the way, that always worked well in the
58 The Story of Company A.
army. Solids or liquids, it made no difference — all
went well. This find of sugar lasted us a few days.
It is a fact, however, that with all our watchfulness
and care, we never found another barrel of sugar.
Saturday, February ist, the New York was, after
a deal of trouble, dragged across the bar, and we
Return returned to our old quarters on board. The bunks
to in the center of the cabin had been taken down in
New York
our absence, and the men were now obliged to sleep
on the floor.
On the 3d of February the scene changed entirely
from a disheartening, to a decidedly encouraging
one. The wind had gone down, and the seas were
calm, vessels all across the bar, decks crowded with
soldiers, and everything ready for business. The
morning of February 5th broke calm and pleasant ;
the sun, rising clear and beautiful, shed a radiant
light over the fleet of Burnside, the dreary sands of
Hatteras, and the stormy seas on which we had
tossed so long. Far out at sea a solitary sail, a
mere speck in the distance, was working its way
northward, while nearer, but outside the Inlet, the
big waves were rolling in and breaking on the
sandy shore, leaving long lines and patches of white
foam. Meanwhile all was excitement in the Inlet.
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 59
At 8 o'clock, A. M., the fleet was getting under way
1862.
with bands playing and flags flying. The gunboats
took the lead, followed first by the New Brunswick
with the Tenth Connecticut on board, and second
by the New York with the Twenty-fifth Massachu-
setts, having three schooners in tow. The fleet con- e
moves.
sisted of some thirty gunboats, nine or ten steamers
with troops on board, and numerous sailing vessels,
perhaps sixty to seventy-five all told. Each vessel
had its counterpart or image in the water below, and
the whole scene, bathed in the rosy light of morning,
formed a singularly beautiful picture, never before
witnessed by any of those present, and unlikely to
be again during a lifetime. It was in striking con-
trast to the days of wretchedness we had so lately
passed in this same spot. Thus, after a tedious de-
lay of twenty-three days, the Burnside Expedition
was once more on the move and about to take the
aggressive.
The fleet sailed slowly along, and certainly a more
magnificent sight was never before seen on this side
of the Atlantic. The waves as though tired out with
the struggle of the past three weeks, had quieted
down, and we were gliding along as peacefully over
the waters of this inland sea as if its surface had
60 The Story of Company A.
never been disturbed by other than the gentlest of
QC/*
breezes. Thus the hours passed till about two in
the afternoon, when the fleet came to anchor half
way to Roanoke Island, the transports together, with
the gunboats outside as protection for the fleet. We
had orders to land in light marching order, that is,
without knapsacks ; and at night the lights were put
out or concealed. The night was beautiful, clear
and quiet ; and from the other steamers we heard
the low strains of music, and voices singing —
"On the other side of Jordan,"
and
"There is rest for the weary."
"It may be the last night's rest for some of us, — no
doubt we may be on the other side of Jordan ; but
what is the use ? We will pass this night in quiet if
possible, and let what follows take care of itself."
This was a soldier's reasoning.
About 8 A. M. of February 6th the fleet started
again in the same order as before, the gunboats
taking the lead. It clouded up just after sunrise,
and rained quite steadily till noon, when we anchored
again with Roanoke Island in sight ahead. In the
Roanoke o
. afternoon a tugboat came alongside and reported
25th Regt.< Mass. I'ols. 61
that the gunboat Ranger was ordered into action,
and that we must make room for fifty men of the
Twenty-seventh Regiment who were on board. Our
gunboats had discovered the Rebel fleet, so that
there was to be work upon the water as well as on
the land. Soon after the Ranger came alongside
and left two hundred men instead of fifty, all belong-
ing to the Twenty-seventh. This made over nine
hundred men on our good old steamer. We re-
mained here all night.
February yth opened with a fog, but it cleared
away about nine. Gen. Foster came up in the little G
steamer Picket, and addressing Col. Upton, said : Foster's
"Be ready to start at any moment. We shall move
up to the Island and give you all a chance to witness
the bombardment. Then we shall land and clean
out those fellows at once." This was received with
the wildest cheering, and soon after we moved on
towards Roanoke Island.
CHAPTER V,
THE BATTLE OF ROANOKE.
DEFENSES of the Island, it was reported,
1862. consisted of Fort Huger, Fort Blanchard and
Fort Bartow, all on the western shore of Roanoke.
The first, with twelve guns, was near the northern
end of the Island ; and next in order Fort Blanchard
Defenses witn three guns. Still farther to the south, and per-
hiand naPs nearly midway of the Island, was Fort Bartow
with ten guns. From near this point to the main
land of North Carolina a line of piles or sunken ships
extended, and behind or north of these defenses
was the rebel fleet consisting of eight small vessels
with ten or twelve guns all told. The water between
Roanoke Island and the main land is known as
Croatan Sound. About midway, and running length-
wise of the Island, was the regular road ; and near
the center of the Island was a three-gun battery
Regt., Mass. Vols. 63
which was flanked on either side by swamps sup-
posed to be impassable. The guns of this battery
perfectly commanded the road, which was the only
way, apparently, to the northern end of the Island,
where were the camps of the Rebels. Here, then,
was the work to be done : the fleet to silence the
forts and destroy the Rebel vessels ; the army to
land and clean out the Island.*
The transports came to anchor just off the place
known as Ashby's Landing, and we had a splendid
chance to witness the whole affair. We watched
with eager interest our gunboats as they took their
positions apparently in easy range of the Rebel
forts, and not a gun fired, when suddenly there was Attack
a puff of smoke from one of our gunboats, a report
showing a heavy gun had been fired, and the bom-
bardment of Roanoke Island was begun. This was
about half-past eleven on the morning of February
7th. The first shot struck the Rebel earthwork
squarely, and an explosion quickly followed throw-
ing up smoke and dirt, showing that the shot had
done its work. The fort promptly replied, and as
* Roanoke Island, from this distance, fiad the appearance for the most
part of being well wooded, with but one house in sight, or rather one house
with a small out-building in the rear. These were near what was called
Ashby's landing, which was the point where we expected to land.
9
64 The Story of Company A.
the gunboats, one after another, came into action,
we had passing before our eyes a scene such as we
all had undoubtedly read of, but probably what few
of us had ever witnessed — a bombardment.
The movements of a little sloop were watched by
The bom- *
bardmen!.d\\ with great interest. It had one gun only, said
to be a hundred pounder. It sailed in a circle and
put a shot into the Rebel fort every time on its
nearest approach to it. It was an exciting scene ;
the gunboats firing so slowly and yet so surely,
every shot seeming to tell on the fort, while the
enemy's fire, much more rapid, appeared to have no
effect whatever on the fleet. May be the range was
too great, or perhaps bad gunnery was the reason ;
but, so far as we could see, little damage was done
to the Union gunboats. Thus the battle went on.
We moved up nearer to the scene of conflict and
had a still better view of the engagement. The
gunboats were now firing much more rapidly than
at the commencement, and the fort was apparently
about silenced, when suddenly great clouds of smoke
rolled up from it, showing that the interior was on
fire. At this cheers went up from every vessel of
the Union fleet, and the gunboats kept firing with
the greatest rapidity.
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 65
The Rebel fleet meantime we had heard nothing
1862.
of; a weak demonstration attempted towards the
last of the bombardment was quickly repulsed by a
few shots from the Union gunboats.
About 3 P. M. we were ordered to land, and the
Twenty-fifth Regiment went from the New York on Orders
* to land.
board the Pilot Boy, and towing a long line of boats
filled with men, moved slowly towards the land.
We had seen the glitter of Rebel bayonets as we
left the New York, and all expected a volley as we
approached the land, but a few shells from our gun-
boat, Delaware, sent the Rebels "kiting," and we
received not a single shot from them while landing.
When the Pilot Boy approached the land as near as
was possible, the boys were transferred to boats
alongside, which were quickly filled. The desire to
go in the first boats was so great, it was only by
repeated orders from Capt. Pickett himself that those
who were to stay behind could be kept quiet ; and
all were promised, "you shall go in the next boats."
Capt. Pickett, Orderly George A. Johnson and the
right of the Company were in the first boats. At
the same time the long line of boats astern sep-
arated, and all made for the shore. It was an ex-
citing time, and we watched anxiously to see who
66 The Story of Company A.
would reach land first. The boats containing the
QC_
Company A boys had the advantage and touched
ground first, but it was the muddy bottom, not dry
land ; but no sooner had the boats struck ground
than the men were in the water wading for the shore.
Capt. Pickett was the first man in the water. We
could see from the Pilot Boy the men holding up
their rifles and cartridge boxes to keep them from
Landing gettmg wet- Capt. Pickett and George A. Johnson,
on the our Orderly Sergeant, were the first to stand on dry
land ;* and we who were left behind on the old Pilot
Boy made the air ring with cheers for the pony
Captain of Company A. Thus, February 7th, 1862,
we scored one for the old Company, as Captain
Josiah Pickett and Orderly Sergeant George A.
Johnson were the first men of the Burnside Expedi-
tion to stand on Roanoke Island.
The boats returning (the distance was but a few
rods), a sort of bridge was made of them, and the
* It has been claimed that Lieut. Andrew of the Ninth New York, in
reconnoitring for a landing place for the troops, took soundings to the shore
of Roanoke, and actually stood on the Island. Of the correctness of this
report I cannot judge. It is also said that the Lieut, was fired on and sev-
eral of his boat's crew (5th R. I.) wounded. All of this may be true so far
as I know; but I simply claim what we all saw — that at the landing Q{ troops
on the yth of February, Capt. Pickett and Orderly Sergeant Johnson of Co.
A, Twenty-fifth Mass, werey?™/ to land on the Island.
Regt., Mass. Vols. 67
soldiers eot ashore much faster and with dry clothes.
1862.
The Company was quickly formed and deployed as
skirmishers. The house we had seen from the
steamer was surrounded and the door burst open. .
The occupants had fled, but a fire was blazing upon
the hearth, the table stood loaded with dishes, and
everything denoted a hasty departure. Behind the
house was a smaller one, evidently the servants'
quarters. This was much in the same condition "as
the first, not a human being to be found. In a small
out-building we found fresh bread and a pan of milk;
this was a prize, and in a few minutes both bread
and milk had vanished, and we left the place think-
ing how nicely everything works in for a soldier.
It was now growing dark, and we prepared to
bivouac. It began to rain later, but our fires burnt Soldiers
cheerily, and the boys brought along rails to replen-
ish them, and all sorts of things to eat. How nicely
rails work in for fires — just the right size and so dry !
And then the fact is, soldiers are always hungry,
and it is part of a soldier's duty to bring in to his
squad round the bivouac fire something in the way
of rations, and nothing comes amiss that can be
eaten or drank, or in any way used for the comfort
of the squad. One brought a chunk of salt pork —
68 The Story of Company A.
good ; another, onions — good again ; another cab-
bages ; another, an old iron kettle. Corporal Jaalam
Gates brought a back-load of sweet potatoes. It
seems the Corporal had found a lot of potatoes, and
Timely
supplies, no way to "tote" them along. He quickly took off
his drawers, tied up the legs, filled them with the
coveted potatoes, and brought them on his back to
our bivouac amid the shouts of the boys as he made
his- appearance. So with roasting potatoes in the
ashes, boiling them with pork and cabbage in our
kettle, and making our coffee in our tin cups over
the rail fire, we managed to get up quite a supper ;
and we were feeling very comfortable in spite of
the rain, when, about nine P. M., we were startled
by the hoarse cry of the Orderly, "Fall in, Company
A; fall in." We are quickly in line, and file off
directly into the forest which surrounds the little
Midnight ciearmcr where we landed. We steal along rapidly
Recon-
naissance, and silently, not a word spoken ; and leave a guard
of two or three men at every path that crosses the
road. We come to a small stream and have to pass
through it ; it is waist deep and we are thoroughly
soaked, but on we go. A light is seen a short dis-
tance from the road, and Sergeant J. J. McLane is
sent to look after it ; he approaches it cautiously
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 69
and reports on his return that it is evidently a
1862.
bivouac fire of the enemy. We are soon after or-
dered back, and pass through the stream of water
again, and after a short halt once more ordered for-
ward through the water for the third time. Sergeant
George Burr is left at one cross road with three men,
and thus we move on till at last we have orders to
return to our bivouac which we reach about mid-
night, having crossed that wretched stream of water
four times ; and return to our starting point wet,
cold and tired.
Stirring up our fire we cooked some coffee which
revived us somewhat, and in the driving rain we
curled up on the wet ground and passed a wretched
night in the vain endeavor to sleep, and eagerly
wishing for the morrow.
"I was quite fortunate in having a dry pair of
stockings to put on after we got back from our Dry
scouting expedition. Taking off the soaked bro-
gans and wet socks, I proceeded to put on a clean
dry pair, when — 'Where in thunder did you get
dry stockings ?' 'Ain't you slatting on considerable
style for a soldier ? ' 'Look here, fellows, Sergeant's
got .clean, dry stockings,' and other exclamations.
'You ain't putting on any airs ; oh no/ said a dis-
70 The Story of Company A.
- consolate looking soldier who had been casting
longing eyes during the transfer. 'Home made,
hey, boy?' 'Well, boys, these are home made.
My old mother knit them — God bless her — and
I've carried them right up here in the lining of
stockings, my vest, one on each side, heels front and toes to
the shoulder, don't you see. Now if you fellows
want to know just how uncomfortable you are, feel
of that warm, dry stocking;' and from hand to hand
went the stocking, stroked like a cat by one, rubbed
on the cheek of another, with all sorts of comments
on the mysterious appearance of dry stockings in
such wet weather. So after washing as well as I
could the socks just taken off, and sticking them up
by the fire to dry if possible, I found them dry
enough in the morning to take their place in the
vest as the others had done. This plan of carrying
an extra pair of stockings worked well, and many
made use of it when a long march was anticipated."
February 8th we were early astir, and hard-tack,
sweet potatoes baked in the ashes, and a cup (hold-
ing a quart) of coffee, made a breakfast fit for a
soldier. About seven we again heard the hoarse
voice of our Orderly ("Old Posey"), with "Fall in,
Company A"; again we were quickly in line, and
Rcgt., Mass. Vols. 71
again we marched directly into the forest in the
same road we took the night before. Again we
crossed that miserable stream of water and again Battle of
were soaked through to our waists. But we were
soon deployed as skirmishers on both sides of the
road, and we advanced slowly on account of the
dense tangled undergrowth, the country being one
great swamp. This was no picnic, no fancy skirmish
we were on ; it meant business this time. After .
Struggle
perhaps an hour of this work — it seemed much in the
longer than that — we heard the sharp crack of a Swamf-
rifle on our left, and immediately the cry ran along
the line, "Here they are — here they are." We had
run on to the Rebel pickets, and with* a cheer we
struggled through the almost impassable swamp.
Capt. Pickett, who had all this time been encour-
aging us, now shouted his orders, and his voice
rang out loud and clear like a bugle-tone. "Give
it to 'em, lads ; drive 'em out ! Drive the devils out
of that ! " We responded with a cheer, but it was
terrible work. How the sweat rolled off our faces.
How the brambles and briars clung to us, tearing
our clothes, and flesh even. It was exciting though,
for all that. We were exchanging shots with the
enemy every rod, and were driving them right along.
10
72 The Story of Company A.
We came at last to a large clearing extending on
Feb s both sides of the road ; the trees had been felled
Battle of and lay on the ground, and our unpractised eyes
Roanoke. ^y ug t^ai ^& j^ Driven ^g Rebej pickets to their
stronghold. On closer inspection we could see the
outline of an earthwork mounting three guns in
embrasures, at perhaps two hundred yards distance.
Here, then, was the work to be done. The guns
in the earthwork commanded the road and the open
space. But we had got to clean out those fellows
— that's what Gen. Foster said we should do. We
came to a halt, and as skirmishers took advantage
of the situation all we could. Every hollow in the
'ground had a soldier in it ; every tree had a soldier
behind it. We covered ourselves as best we could,
which as skirmishers we had a right to do ; and
obeying the order of our Captain, "Don't waste
your powder, boys," we fired carefully, and took
great pains that we fired at something, and we never
aimed at trees. We fired lying down, and rolled
over on our backs to load. In skirmishing, the
men are kept five yards apart ; we had followed
this rule to a nicety, so that Company A, nearly
one hundred men, stretched out a long distance at
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 73
this time, and the firing was of course very irregu-
lar, each shooting as he found a proper mark. Feb g"
The enemy fired much as we did, slowly ; and had Batile °f
. Roanoke.
got our range to a dot. Suddenly we noticed one
of the Company crawling to the rear dragging his
rifle along with him. " Hallo, Dave, what's the
trouble?" "Hit, fellers," was his short reply, and
he crawled along a short distance, and then cooly
got up and walked limping to the rear. This was pirstman
David B. Bigelow, the first man of Company A wounded.
wounded in action in the service of the United
States. He was hit in the left leg, in the fleshy
part above the knee — a bloody and painful, but not
a serious wound.
The bullets came uncomfortably near, and so
spiteful. "Those fellows mean to hit us, Captain,"
said Dan Eaton. "Don't you mean to hit them ?"
said the Captain. "Of course I do, but you see — "
He did not finish the sentence but pulled out a plug
of tobacco and bit off a generous allowance, and
running his cold gray eye along his rifle barrel, we
heard in a few seconds its sharp, spiteful ring, which
showed that he meant to hit something — not a tree.
Another man went to the rear — Horace Brooks,
hit in the foot, and he limped away out of sight.
74 The Story of Company A.
It is singular that a wounded man will walk away
Feb s fr°m t^le sPot where he receives his wound as though
Battle of he could not be hit again. This wound of Brooks
* crippled him for life. He never served with the
Company again, but remained his three years as
a detailed man at New Berne.
We expected the Regiment would soon make its
appearance with the Brigade, when we would be
withdrawn as skirmishers, and take our places with
them in line of battle. It should be remembered
that this was our first experience under fire, and it
must be confessed that the boys showed a deal of
pluck and endurance in skirmishing up to this point,
under fire^^ great coolness in action. This, undoubtedly,
was in a great measure owing to the thorough drill
we had received from the first ; also to the cool be-
havior of the officers. The orders of Capt. Pickett
were clearly and promptly given, and we felt from
one end of the skirmish line to the other that he
was with us, and that he was in command. Lieut.
Goodwin showed great ability and coolness through
the whole affair, and these officers could not feel
otherwise than pleased with the behavior of the men
in this their first trial. Lieut. Bessey had been de-
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 75
tailed on the signal corps and was not with the
1862.
Company in the Battle of Roanoke. Feb g
As we expected, the Regiment soon made its Battle of
Roanoke.
appearance with the rest of the Brigade, and we
took our place in its ranks ; but Samuel S. Dresser
went down with a wound in his leg, Charley Bartlett
with a hit in the arm, and Henry F. Knox with a
wound in the neck — five of Company A wounded
in the first engagement.
Line of battle was formed as soon as possible,
and the Rebels opened on us with the big guns.
We replied with a volley of musketry, and the bat-
tle was fairly opened. Our artillery (small howit-
zers) was soon placed in position, and for some
three hours the firing was incessant. The ammu-
nition of the Twenty-fifth being exhausted, the
Regiment was withdrawn to the rear a short dis-
tance, and we rested on the ground. While in this
position Hawkin's Zouaves (9th N. Y. Vols.) came
up the road at double-quick, and we supposed were
going to charge the enemy at once ; but they halted
near and in front of us, and by some mistake or Mistake
other, fired a volley into the Tenth Connecticut. °f the
Some said they were deceived by the gray over-
76 The Story of Company A.
coats of the Connecticut troops, that being the color
Feb s worn by the Rebels. Be it as it may, the Tenth
Battle of turned on the Zouaves to see from whence the firing
oano e' came, and the latter faced about and made tracks
for the rear, nearly running over us (the 25th).
This was prevented by the boys springing to their
A Panic ^eet an(^ bringing their rifles to "Charge bayonets,"
averted, the officers cooly drawing their swords and giving
the orders. This stopped the backward movement
and prevented much trouble.
We had an opportunity while lying here of seeing
the effect of the enemy's firing, in the bringing out
of the wounded. One man was carried by with his
head nearly all torn away by a cannon shot ; another
had an arm shot off, but he walked by cheering on
the soldiers as they fired. Another, shot in the
Deadand breast, was moaning terribly and leaning on the
•wounded.
shoulders of two of his comrades. Many were
brought out on stretchers, and many dead were
carried hurriedly 'by. Thus the grim and ghastly
procession passed on.
Meantime the Twenty-first Massachusetts and
Fifty-first New York had pushed deep into the
swamp on the left, with the intention of flanking
the Rebel right ; the Twenty-third Massachusetts
Regt., Mass. Vols. 77
and Ninth New York (Hawkins Zouaves) tried the
same on the Rebel left. After a hard struggle with Feb g"
the mud and briars of this miserable swamp, the Battle of
brave regiments on the left succeeded in flanking
the Rebel right, and with a sudden dash and rousing
cheers, entered the Rebel battery. The colors of
the Twenty-first Massachusetts were the first to
float over the Rebel works, quickly followed by
those of the Fifty-first New York. History has it
J Battery
(notably Abbott's History of the Rebellion) that taken.
Hawkins' Zouaves stormed the battery and took it.
This is simply untrue. The Hawkins Zouaves, with
the Twenty-third Massachusetts "swarmed over the
earthworks," possibly ; but the battery was taken
already. The Zouaves no doubt had a good writer
among them, and he wrote a very creditable story ;
but what is the use ? The Twenty-first Massachu-
setts, that splendid fighting regiment, first entered
and its colors first floated over the Rebel battery.
We had orders now to move on, and we advanced
quickly up the road and were soon inside the bat-
tery. We counted fifteen dead Rebels lying around
in the earthworks, most of them. The first was a
gunner, struck in the head by a bullet. His cap
was on his head, strap under his chin, just gasping
78 The Story of Company A.
his last as we passed. The ground was covered
T Rf^O
with his blood. All of the Rebels killed were poorly
Feb. 8. J
Battle of c\&d with one exception. That was a young man,
a captain, said to be Captain Cole and to belong to
Philadelphia. He wore a fine uniform, had rings
Rebgl on his fingers and gold studs in his white shirt front.
dead. He was killed by a shot through the heart. The
bullet made a small, clean round hole, which had
bled scarcely a drop.
We continued our march through the woods,
passing very few houses, and taking a few prisoners
who seemed willing enough to be captured. These
also were poorly clad, but were quite talkative. We
soon met one of Burnside's aids, who said the
Rebels had surrendered over two thousand men,
and more than twenty pieces of artillery. So ended
the Battle of Roanoke Island, after a struggle of
three hours or more, and a total loss to the Union
troops of forty killed and over two hundred wounded.
As we pushed along rapidly we found the road
thickly strewn with guns and equipments, knap-
sacks and clothing, thrown hastily away by the
Rebels in their flight. We passed one house near
the road filled with wounded Rebels, among them
2 $th Regt., Mass. Vols. 79
O. Jennings Wise, son of Henry A. Wise, of Vir-
ginia. He was badly wounded and died soon after.
Our road*lay through woods the greater part of
the way. We passed on our right several small
hills which appeared to be composed entirely of
clean sand, with no vegetation on them save an
occasional stunted pine ; but nothing green what-
ever, and presenting a curious sight. It was dark
when we reached the Rebel encampment, and we Rebel
were quite ready to halt when the order was given, encamp-
We found here very extensive barracks, and an
immense amount of army material in the shape of
rations, ammunition, guns, swords and other small
arms. The barracks were very well built of logs,
and could shelter eight or ten thousand men. We
found room in the building after considerable search,
and we were glad to get under cover.
It was interesting to see how freely our boys and
the Rebels talked over the events of the day to-
gether. Many of the Rebels did not seem to care
much about getting beaten, and many said they
were forced into the service.
The next day (Feb. 9th) was the Sabbath. It
did riot seem much like a Sunday at home, and
there was so much stir and excitement that it was a
8o The Story of Company A.
great contrast to our quiet Sundays at Annapolis.
Our camp here was known as Camp Foster. The
Rebels were everywhere about, apparently under
no restraint whatever. They were all as poorly
clothed as the first we had seen, save the officers
who in general were very well clad ; but in no case
did they compare with the boys in blue.
In the afternoon a few of us got passes and started
on an expedition to the northern shore of the Island,
Tramp extending our tramp to the two upper forts captured
over the the day before. The first one and the largest, Fort
Huger, mounted twelve guns, mostly thirty-two
pounders. The other, Fort Blanchard, was a much
smaller earthwork, containing but three guns. These
forts were but just finished, and were not used in
the battle of the 8th. The guns had been spiked,
but only with nails which could be easily removed.
The small fort was about two miles from the larger,
and both were regular earthworks and really quite
strong. We found the road we travelled thickly
strewn with knapsacks and other accoutrements.
Returning to camp we found our squad had a
good dinner nearly prepared. Good dinners are
obstacles easily overcome by hungry soldiers. Ser-
geant "Jemsy" (McLane) had been skirmishing
25th Rcgt., Mass. Vols. 81
around for something to eat — soldiers always do
when off duty — and had brought in a nice fat turkey;
another had confiscated a chicken, both boiled to-
gether with a good bit of pork and plenty of sweet
potatoes. Who would n't go for a soger ? *
Just after dinner we were startled by a volley of
musketry and bullets flying over our heads. "Fall
in, fall in," was the order ; and in a very few min-
utes we were in line and ready for action. Eating Alarm
dinner a few minutes ago ; now ready to be shot !
The Rebel prisoners bustled around considerable,
their officers appearing at the doors of the barracks,
looking anxiously around, expecting as we were
that trouble was brewing ; but the firing proved to
be by some of the Union troops, who had discharged
their rifles preparatory to a good cleaning, and had
aimed a little too close to our heads to be agreeable.
But we had no more of this, so we broke ranks and
the camp settled down into quietude again.
The results of the victory of February 8th may be
briefly stated. Two thousand five hundred pris- Fruits of
oners, three forts containing twenty-five guns, one Vlctory-
small earthwork where the fight took place having
three, guns, and another not used in the action also
*A common expression in the army.
82 The Story of Company A.
having three guns, small arms by thousands, tons
1862. r ... r ,,
ot ammunition, and a great quantity of nour, bacon,
etc., while the Rebel fleet was wholly destroyed.
Truly, a first-class victory.
Burdened as we were with so many prisoners,
it required a regiment daily for guard duty ; but this
officers did not last many days, for on February nth the
depart. ReDe] officers were sent away to be exchanged.
They marched from the barracks to the place of
embarkation between two lines of Union soldiers,
and went on board the S. R. Spaulding. This was
some relief; and other prisoners went off later,
lightening up the guard and making an easier life
of it.
The prisoners and Union boys would often get
together evenings, and talk of the events of the last
few days in perfect good feeling ; and sometimes
the Rebel prisoners held prayer meetings in which
Inter_ our boys would join. Singular circumstance, —
course, killing one another a few hours before, now praying
that each others' lives might be spared. Our boys
swapped jack knives with the Rebels, and traded all
sorts of things for tobacco ; and when we saw the
boys in blue and the boys in gray exchanging the
very buttons on their jackets (those who had them)
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 83
and pleased as children, it did seem as if the habit
of swapping could hardly be carried further.
The prisoners were for the most part extremely
ignorant, and many expressed a wish to get back
home and to stay there. The officers seemed to
think they had made a great mistake in allowing
us to land as they did without hindrance. No doubt
about that. Ten thousand armed men — real live
Yankees — once on Roanoke Island, were going to
travel from one end to the other, and no earthly
power could stop them. It was a mistake ; but the
landing would have been made and the Rebels
cleaned out anyway — didn't Gen. Foster say so ?
We learned from the darky servants of the Rebel
officers that their masters had buried ''lots of things
out in de woods dar." That was enough ; our boys
gave the woods "out dar" a thorough search, digging
up the ground with their bayonets and knives, and for
finding many small arms, some very nice revolvers, Treasure-
several fancy rifles, and many other things of no
great value. One squad did not get very well paid
for their trouble, for they found after some patient
digging that they had opened the grave of a dead
Rebel. There was not so much digging after that.
84 The Story of Company A.
Among the prisoners taken were men from the
Wise Legion of Virginia, Richmond Blues, Ben
McCulloch Rangers, and the Eighth North Caro-
lina Regiment. These were considered among the
best troops, and best clothed and equipped.
On the morning of February i6th a lot of pris-
oners under guard of Company A, were marched to
Work /?r the shore near the upper fort, where each prisoner
the pris- t00k his backload of boards and brought them to
oners,
the barracks. This was not fancied much by the
Rebels, although there was not a great deal of
growling ; but I think the movement rather pleased
Company A. The boards were to be used in build-
ing, so the movement was to some purpose.
A squad of us tried the experiment of taking a
swim at a sandy beach we found at the northern
end of the Island, but the coldness of the water
drove us out as quickly as we went in, and the swim
Bath ended in a very short bath ; and we made up our
minds that bathing at Roanoke Island in February
was not as agreeable as bathing in Massachusetts
ki July. The changes in the weather we found
about as sudden and as great as those in New Eng-
land.
2 5th Regt., Mass. Vols. 85
On the i yth a large number of prisoners left
under guard of the Twenty-third Massachusetts ;
and on the i8th all that remained of the prisoners
were marched under guard of the Twenty-fifth Reg-
iment to the shore near Fort Huger, where they
were put on board the Pilot Boy and the "Old
Wheelbarrow,"* as the stern-wheel steamer was T
Removal
called. On going on board the vessels the prison- of the
ers had to march directly under the old flag that^rz
they had so dishonored a few days before by firing
upon it. I think the sight did us all good, and it
certainly did the prisoners no harm, for they saw
floating above them the starry flag that had pro-
tected them in former years, and which was to pro-
tect them in years to come. These prisoners were
like all the rest, a tough-looking set, ragged and
dirty, and very illiterate. Some of our Company
Their
had found a muster roll of one of the Rebel com- icrnoranfe
o
panics, and fully two-thirds of the names had their
X mark. Some said they were fighting for their
* The stern-wheel steamer or -'Wheelbarrow" was a rusty old thing, much
like the steamers on the western rivers. It was two stories high with a large
wheel astern. It was painted black, and looked like an old tumble-down
cotton mill afloat. Of very light draft, it was of great service in the shallow
water, and was constantly on the go. It is a wonder how she ever got around
Cape Hatteras if she was brought that way.
86 The Story of Company A.
x
homes ; others that they were fighting for secession ;
others frankly owned that they did not know what
they were fighting for. Some had considerable
pluck, and said they would be at us again when ex-
changed ; and some of these same men were taken
again at New Berne. Others had got enough of it
and longed for home. These prisoners, most of
Removal tnem> were taken to the steamer New York, and
of the Company A went on board as guard. We moved
s' about two miles from the Island, near a light house,
and came to anchor to wait for the other boats with
the rest of the prisoners. It was said that we should
sail for Elizabeth City where the prisoners would be
exchanged.
We lay here all day of the igth, and not until
about 2 p. M. on the 2Oth did we receive orders to
follow the S. R. Spaulding, which with the other
steamers had just arrived. The vessels carrying
the prisoners were the .51 R. Spaulding, New York,
Cossack, Admiral and Peabody. To Elizabeth City
where we were going was some forty miles, and on
starting, the other steamers were all in advance of
the New York ; but we passed them one after an-
other, the Spa^tlding included, and then to obey
orders took our place second in line. It was a pretty
25th Rcgt., Mass. Vols. 87
sight to see the New York pass the other steamers -
so nicely, and the prisoners as well as our boys were
greatly excited over it, and called it a race, but it
was simply obeying orders.
About twenty miles from Roanoke we passed
another light house, and soon began to see signs of
life. Villages, wind mills, cultivated fields, etc.,
appeared ; and the land in many places seemed to
be covered with trees, pines mostly, with the dark
green cypress on the low lands. About 6 p. M. we
anchored off Elizabeth City, a high-sounding name
for so small a village (ten or twelve hundred inhabi-
tants), but quite a pretty place for all that. We
here saw what our gunboats had been doing since
the fight. It seems they drove the Rebel boats
from Roanoke, and followed them to this place
where they found six Rebel gunboats under the
protection of a battery on shore. The Union fleet, destroyed.
as the story goes, paid no attention to the battery,
but went heavily for the boats, boarding and cap-
turing two and sinking four (the wrecks of which
we saw sticking out of the water), clearing out the
whole lot ; and then paid their regards to the battery,
which was quickly silenced. The troops and in-
habitants fled ; but the place being of no importance
88 The Story of Company A.
in a military way, it was not occupied by our men,
and the inhabitants returned.
At 1 1 o'clock of February 2ist, we steamed up to
the little wharf, and began to "discharge cargo" —
that is, to land the prisoners. They were gathered
Prisoners *nto comPames by their sergeants, and were put
landed ashore as fast as possible. It was a motley crowd
and — SQ wrej;Chec[iy clad. Their blankets were made
paroled.
of bits of carpet that had evidently had hard usage
before serving this purpose. There was no uni-
formity in their dress — it could not be called a
uniform, save in color, nearly all being the same
dirty gray. They had no arms of course ; these
were all left at Roanoke. Knapsacks and haver-
sacks were entirely home made, with canteens made
of wood. A more wretched-looking set of men I
certainly never saw. Some said to us in a quiet
way that they would never be caught in the army
again ; others were stupidly indifferent ; others were
somewhat excited, and a few had some bluster left ;
' but it was a sorry sight. And yet, these men fought
well in the battle of the 8th. Some of these poor
fellows were sick on the boat, and we got medicine
for them, took good care of them, and made them as
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 89
comfortable as we could — indeed they were treated
1862.
like men.
On shore we noticed some Rebel soldiers with
our blue uniforms on. These they got from the
gunboat Fanny, which was taken by the Rebels,
and which our fleet recaptured and sunk a few days
before. We were not allowed to stray from the
New York, but we could see several church spires, Elizabeth
and that the streets were wide, with many trees City-
scattered along through them. We could also see
the ruins of several houses burned by their own
soldiers, who would have destroyed the whole town
if the inhabitants had not rallied in time to save
their property, so they told us. We stopped only
long enough to land the prisoners, and then moved
about half a mile from the town and dropped anchor
to give the other steamers a chance to land their
prisoners. It is an unimportant fact to note here ;
but how the frogs- did peep that night ! It seemed
as if they kept up the chorus till morning. Said Fro
one of our boys : "You bet the little cusses ain't
piping like that up home about this time."
February 22nd, at 8 A. M. we got under way, and
after a very pleasant sail anchored off Roanoke
Island once more, and listened to a salute in honor
90 The Story of Company A.
of Washington's birth-day from the guns spiked by
the Rebels on the day of the fight.
Sunday the 23d a boat went ashore and our knap-
sacks were sent to us — a soldier feels lost without
his knapsack — and we soon after moved up to the
first light house we saw when going to Elizabeth
City ; and after, a stay of twenty-four hours, were
ordered back to join the fleet at Roanoke.
In one of the state rooms occupied by the Rebel
prisoners, we found the following lines written in
pencil on the wall :
We, the non-commissioned officers of Co. K, North Carolina 8th
of the
. . Regiment, do give our thanks to Co. A, of the Massachusetts 2Sth,
prisoners. °
for the many acts of kindness shown by that Co. to us, and if it
is ever in our power will return the same.
Sergt. J. IDE, for the Company
Many months after, it was in their power, and
they redeemed their promise.
February 26th, we went ashore in small boats,
landing near the spot we first touched February 8th ;
and from there marched to the barracks we left one
week ago. We noticed lots of robins on the way
up, singing as sweetly as they ever did at home in
warmer weather.
2 5th Regt., Mass. Vols. 91
Our mail had just arrived. Mail day was a great
day for soldiers. The postmaster, a soldier detailed
for that purpose, brought the mail to the Company,
and called out the names of the lucky ones, handing Mail day.
over the precious letters. The Twenty-fifth is no-
tably a writing regiment. The mail bag always
leaves well filled and returns in like condition.
It seems almost laughable to tell now of the ru-
mors of peace that were afloat in camp at this early Rumor3
J of peace.
stage of the war. We were all to be home in sixty
days, etc. But all through the war these rumors
would start up, no one knew how ; but would die
out as quickly as they had risen. The particular
rumor at this time was that Burnside had said that
he would have his troops home by the first of July.
Some tried to believe it, but the majority did not
take stock in this or any other report of like import.
Our camp here was known as Camp Foster (our
second camp since we left Worcester) ; and by order camp
of Gen. Burnside we are to have inscribed on our Foster-
banner: "Roanoke Island, February 8th, 1862."
Burnside gave his troops great praise for their con-
duct in this their first engagement ; and they cer-
tainly did well, and really deserved the commen-
dation he bestowed on them.
92 The Story of Company A.
While here our minds naturally went back to the
discovery and first settlement of Roanoke Island in
the days of Elizabeth of England, nearly three cen-
turies before. Sir Walter Raleigh visited the Island
and attempted the foundation of a colony which
proved a failure. After so long a time its romantic
history was now supplemented by the remarkable
events of the last few days.
"One morning I obtained a pass, and started about
9 o'clock for a long stroll, intending to hunt up the
wounded of Company A. Making my way at once
z/" 'to Fort Huger, and following along the coast of the
Island to Fort Blanchard, I noticed a boat-load of
Zouaves bound in the same direction as myself; and
presently a hail came: 'Hallo, there; what regi-
ment?' 'Twenty-fifth Massachusetts,' I replied.
This answer brought the boat to me with the wel-
come, 'Come aboard' ; and we were soon at their
quarters, which proved to be on one of the old canal
boats we had towed around Cape Hatteras. It was
Company K, Hawkins Zouaves, into whose hands I
TT 7 ' *• *
naivkins
Zouaves, had fallen, and a bright, jolly set of fellows they
were. In vain I pleaded a long tramp before me ;
I must stop to dinner, and I did. These men were
all quite young, and were completely bound up in
2$th Rcgt., Mass. Vols. 93
their regiment. Its singular dress they claimed was
the most comfortable^ for a soldier — the red cap,
loose jacket and baggy trousers. Their orderly was
of Scotch descent, named Donaldson, and he was
quite enthusiastic over Massachusetts soldiers. He
said the Zouave uniform seemed whimsical, and it
was so regarded ; but men will do a great deal for a
whim. These men with their showy uniforms ap-
peared well pleased with their officers, and seemed
very intelligent and contented.
" I left the Zou-zous with regret, and hurried on to
the house we surrounded when we first landed.
This was used now as a hospital, and on going up
stairs I found only one of Company A — Charley
* J Charley
Bartlett. He was feeling badly ; his right arm — the
wounded one — was bandaged, and he was suffer-
ing a great deal from. it. I cheered him up, told
him all the news, and he said if he could only have
his knapsack and be with the other wounded A boys
he would be all right. I promised him this, and
bade him goodbye.
"I learned that most of the wounded had been
placed on steamers and nearly all would be sent
home. I found no more A boys. Near the house
were many graves of the Union dead, each having
94 The Story of Company A.
a board at the head. Some were marked with
name, regiment, etc.; others "supposed to be" such
a one ; and several were marked "unknown." This,
then, was the end — an unknown grave. This is the
The dead.
dark side of a soldier's life — wounds, suffering, death
and a nameless grave.
" From the hospital my next point was the battery
where the fight took place. A few soldiers were on
duty there ; and men from various regiments were
pointing out places occupied by them during the
action. Squads of soldiers were eagerly hunting
for (of course) something to eat, making special
efforts to capture North Carolina hogs, which to a
Hunting rather limited extent were found on the Island. An
hogs.
occasional squeal in the distance denoted a capture ;
and the indications were that within a short time
very little "pork" would be found running around
loose on Roanoke Island. I reached the barracks
about dark, hungry, to be sure, and quite ready to
partake of a meal of North Carolina hog and sweet
potatoes."
March 4th we had company drill for the first time
since leaving Annapolis, save one or two attempts to
drill on the New York. While drilling we noticed
robins, bluebirds and sparrows in abundance. These
2$th Rcgt., Mass. Vols. 95
birds stay in this locality all winter, which proves
that the season cannot be very severe.
The soldiers got the idea of making briar wood
pipes while we were at Roanoke, and some were Briar
very curious affairs. The roots grew in all sorts of W00(i-
fantastic shapes, and with a deal of skill and patience
the boys made very handsome pipes for friends at
home.
Orders came at last for all the wounded to be
sent on board the steamers for home, so they were
all transferred accordingly, and we wished them
good luck on their departure.
"I went one day to the hospital, a rough build-
ing erected for that purpose, to see Corporal Horace
Brooks of our company. He was wounded in the
foot, and lay on his cot looking quite comfortable,
and talked very cheerfully. He said there were
three men near him in the hospital who had but two
legs among them. One had none, and two had lost
one each ; and a singular fact was that the one who
lost both legs was doing well, while another who
lost only a finger had brain fever set in and died.
So it goes."
March 6th we went on board the "Old Wheel-
barrow" or stern-wheel steamer (Union), and were
g6 The Story of Company A.
taken to the New York, where we occupied our old
1862. . ,
quarters again, the sergeants taking the same little
state room as before, which was quite by itself and
was reached from the outside. It seemed like get-
ting home to be in our old bunks again.
On the 7th we had a regular old Hatteras gale,
a gentle reminder of what had been and might be
again. On the 9th it cleared away and we had a
most delightful day of it. Through the winter at
Hatteras it is safe to calculate on two storms a week,
and not of the gentle sort, but regular tearers.
" It is strange how things are mixed in this soldier
life of ours. Now everything seems like peace —
waters quiet, boats gliding about in all directions,
and shouts of laughter from all the vessels in our
vicinity. Rumor has it that we are on the eve of
another battle."
NOTE. The Captain Cole mentioned on page 78, is said to
have been an officer in the famous Richmond Blues, one of the
most aristocratic companies in Virginia,
CHAPTER VI.
THE CAPTURE OF NEW BERNE.
X/TARCH nth we were ordered to move, but had
some trouble on account of the four or five
schooners we were to tow. When we got fairly
under way we run aground, and the soldiers were
} On the
obliged to go on board small steamers to lighten up move,
the New York, and the tugs had a hard time to pull
her off. All this detained us five hours. Meantime
one of the sailors fell overboard, which caused a
ripple of excitement, but the man swam like a fish
and was picked up all right by a small boat.
The morning of March I2th found us at Hatteras
near our old anchoring ground, but we started again,
supposed to be bound for New Berne, ninety miles
from Hatteras Inlet ; and had a delightful day's sail,
reaching the mouth of the Neuse River about 4 P. M.,
and found the rest of the fleet ready and waiting.
98 The Story of Company A.
We steamed slowly but boldly up the river, passing
but few houses scattered along on either side ; and
noticed that the country was well wooded, and ap-
Up the
River, parently more uneven than the section we had left.
We anchored about 8 in the evening at a place
called Slocum's Creek. We had seen during the
day tall columns of dark smoke in different direc-
tions, thought by some to be signals of our approach.
We did not pass a single strange sail, nothing in
fact save a small sail boat containing two men, which
was brought up rather suddenly by a solid shot
from one of our gunboats.
We had orders to land in light marching order
as at Roanoke. It was evident that we had a bio^er
Fore-
bodings, job on our hands than the affair on the Island ; and
"Old Posey" consoled us with the prediction that
some of us would lose the number of our mess
before many hours.
The Neuse River is a noble stream, between
two and three miles wide at its mouth, and navi-
gable for large vessels and steamers to New Berne.
Slocum's Creek is sixteen or eighteen miles below
New Berne, and about the same distance from the
mouth of the Neuse.
2$th Rcgt., Mass. Vols. 99
The night passed quietly away. Going on deck
1 ...... . . 1862.
about midnight the scene was an impressive one.
A silence almost oppressive rested over Burnside's
fleet ; no lights were visible anywhere, but the forms Midnight
of the vessels were plainly to be seen, and the shore scene-
on either side of the river, bordered with forest
trees, lay dark and silent under the dim starlight.
On the morning of March i3th, after the woods
had been shelled by the gunboats, the troops landed
in much the same way as at Roanoke. Lines of
boats were drawn as near the shore as possible by
light-draft steamers ; the boats were then separated
and made for the shore. It was a singularly beautiful
sight; the boats were crowded with men "Wearing
the Blue," and their bayonets glistened as if tipped
with sparks of sunshine. There was the same strife
of the
as at Roanoke as to who should land first ; but here troops.
parts of several companies were landing at the same
time, Company A among the first ; and many jumped
out of the boats and waded ashore. If it was a
mistake on the Rebels' part in allowing us to land
on Roanoke Island, here was another one. We all
landed, and not an opposing shot was fired. Com-
pany A was formed quickly in the woods under live
oak trees from whose branches hung long festoons
ioo The Story of Company A.
of gray moss which waved in the slightest breeze,
l862. i -1 • 1 i r
while vines had crept from tree to tree covering
their tops completely. Birds were twittering in the
branches, and we marched away from this delightful
spot with scarce a thought of the terrible scenes we
might pass through in the next few hours.
The Company was sent on ahead ; passing some
log huts and seeing no people, we halted after
tramping about two miles. Soon a part of Reno's
brigade passed us, with the Twenty-first in advance.
In a short time the Twenty-fifth came up, and we
fell in and pushed on towards New Berne through
pine forests. We passed large, rough buildings
„.. ,, . that had been used as barracks by the Rebels. An
Flight of J
.old darky here told us the Rebels "run like jingo
when dey knowed de Yanks was comin." It had
been a cavalry station, and their scouts had seen us
land, and had given the alarm, when the whole
crowd left for New Berne, and in such a hurry that
their saddles, bridles and other equipments lay scat-
tered around in great confusion. They left their
tables standing with breakfast scarcely touched.
We stopped but a few minutes, but long enough
for some of us to pretty nearly finish that breakfast.
Of course we were hungry — it was certainly over
2$th Regt., Mass. Vols. 101
an hour since we had eaten our breakfast — and sol-
diers are always hungry. It was here that McLane l8"2'
played a practical joke on some of us — oh Jemsy,
how could you ! If I remember rightly the Captain
was in the scrape. McLane came out of the barracks
bringing a large tin dish filled with a dark brown
substance, and cried out, "Sugar, boys, Sugar!"
"Here, Jemsy, here," "This way, Jemsy"; and a
Salt for
score of hands made a grab at the dish, a score of
mouths were filled with the — sugar ? No ! It was
salt, and villainous, dirty salt at that. What a spitting,
sputtering, cursing was there ! We marched on
amid the shouts of those who had not tasted the
sugar, and the curses — not loud but deep — of those
who had.
And now it came on to rain, and shortly the roads
were heavy with mud. The marching became
harder every hour, still there was no grumbling;
and when Gen. Foster rode along- and announced
Hard
(false rumor by the way) that the Army of the marching.
Potomac had advanced, and that Manassas was
taken, the air rung with the shouts of the soldiers.
Soon we hacj a report from the advance that a large
earthwork directly across the road we were travel-
ing had been evacuated by the enemy. This bit of
IO2 The Story of Company A.
news was also received with the greatest enthusiasm,
and served to keep our spirits up for the remainder
of the day. We soon came in sight of the deserted
battery, and were struck with its appearance. It
was built at the point where the road we were
traveling crossed the railroad to New Berne, and
commanded both railroad and turnpike, It was in-
tended for three heavy guns when completed. The
earthworks extended from this point to the Neuse
defenses.
River on our right, and a good distance beyond
the railroad on our left ; and if these works had
been properly defended we should have had a deal
of trouble in getting through them.
We pushed forward through mud and rain, with
frequent halts for a few minutes rest ; and at dark
turned into the woods on the right of the road for a
cheerless bivouac in the wet. It is not a pleasant
thing to contemplate — a bivouac in a heavy rain on
ground already soaked with water — for it had rained
Bivouac steadily for hours and there was now no cessation ;
but here was the place for us to stop, so there was
nothing to be said about it. In spite of the rain we
soon had fires started, and our coffee cooking.
Haversacks were opened, and the everlasting "salt
horse" and hard-tack brought forth ; and these with
2$th Regt., Mass. Vols. 103
our tin (quart) cups full of piping hot coffee sweet-
ened just right, made us, considering all things, a
good supper.
Now we looked around for some place to turn in.
It was amusing to see the different ways the boys
took to provide sleeping places. One man who
had found two rough logs, rolled them close to-
gether and went to sleep on top of them, with his
rubber blanket over him. Three or four were sitting
upright together with their backs against a large
tree, and their rubber blankets drawn over their
heads. Others cut brush and small limbs of trees inthev)et
to sleep on — anything to keep them out of the wet.
Some, by fastening two rubber blankets together
and stretching them between trees with slant or
pitch enough to shed the water, obtained a good
shelter, large enough for four or more to lie under,
while two more rubber blankets kept them from the
wet ground. These blankets measured eight feet
by four, and had eyelet holes all round the edge,
being easily fastened together by strings ; and it
was by using them somewhat as described that the
boys got the greatest benefit from them.
Soldiers choose their tent-mates, and chum to-
gether at every bivouac while on a march ; for
14
IO4 The Story of Company A.
instance, the officers messed together in camp and
bivouac, the sergeants usually did the same, and
the company was divided into squads of four or
more, who were always found together in little
families, so to speak. On this night the Sergeants
had made a shelter, a sort of tent of rubber blan-
kets. Having started with three days' rations we
had enough to eat ; and when "Jemsy" produced
a candle and placed it in the end of a bayonet which
he stuck in the ground inside, we felt more com-
fortable, for we could see just how wretched and
miserable we were.
Scouting parties were sent out in different direc-
tions during the night, and guards posted ; but those
of us off duty managed to get some sleep, wet
through as we were, overcoats and all.
We will look now at the defenses of New Berne.
We had passed without hindrance through the first
line of works, and a strong one it was too ; and we
had reason to suppose we were near the second
defenses. n'ne> as indeed we were (within half a mile). This
second line was perhaps ten miles or more from the
place of landing, and perhaps six miles from New
Berne. It consisted of earthworks — regular intrench-
ments — extending from the River Neuse to the
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 105
railroad, a distance of a mile ; and beyond the rail-
road a long line of rifle pits extended half a mile
further, ending with a two-gun battery on the edge
of a large swamp. The works as far as the railroad
were protected with a deep ditch in front, about ten
feet wide and six feet deep. At the river on the
enemy's left, was Fort Thompson mounting thirteen
guns, some pivot that could be fired in any direction.
This fort had a bomb proof, was very strong, and
certainly a bad thing to approach. Three guns
could sweep the field in front of the intrenchments, The Rebel
defenses.
and ten guns commanded the river. The Neuse
was blockaded by twenty or more sunken ships, a
row of piles, and any number of torpedoes. Above
Fort Thompson, on the river towards New Berne,
was a battery of eight guns, and beyond this another
of four guns, besides one or two smaller works not
completed. The county road we tramped to this
place passed through these fortifications about mid-
way between the river and the railroad ; and at this
point was a sort of lunette mounting three guns
that commanded the road and every approach
thereto. The entire line of works was thoroughly
built, in perfect order, and the position was an ex-
ceedingly strong one. To defend these works the
io6 The Story of Company A.
enemy had some nine thousand men, including five
hundred cavalry, with over thirty pieces of artillery.
To attack and capture this position Burnside had
about nine thousand men, and at the most, eight
or ten small howitzers. But he had the gunboats
also, which, as we shall see, did their part in the
battle. The Rebels had prepared a large raft loaded
with cotton, tar, turpentine and other combustibles,
which was to be set on fire and floated down the
river, and of course would destroy the Yankee gun-
boats— only it didn't. The wind blew the wrong
way and it floated up against the wharf and set it on
fire, and did no harm whatever to the fleet.
It was a long night, that night before the Battle
of New Berne, but like all other things it had an
end. The earliest daylight of the i4th found us
astir, crawling around like so many half-drowned
flies, — cold, wet, stiff, sore and hungry ; but by
moving quickly, many of us managed to get some-
thing to eat and the "cup of coffee," before the ex-
pected order "Fall in" was heard. The order was
not long delayed, and we were once more on the
opening road. We had marched but a short distance, per-
* haps a quarter of a mile, when firing- was heard
Battle.
ahead, which told us that the battle had opened.
Regt., Mass. Vols. 107
The Twenty-fifth filed into the woods on the right
of the road, and with the rest of the brigade formed x 2*
March 14
in line of battle, and pressed forward slowly, Com-
pany A having the right of the regiment, which had
the right of the brigade, We very soon found our-
selves at the edge of a clearing beyond which, at
about three hundred yards distance, were the Rebel
earthworks extending as far as we could see, right
and left. While here Sergeant Putnam was sent
out with one man (Corporal Jaalam Gates, after-
wards a captain in U. S. colored troops) to recon- Battle Oj
noiter, with orders not to fire, but as quietly as New
possible see what could be made out of the situation.
They plunged at once into the woods and made
their way towards the river. They observed the
Rebel earthworks, and at last came in sight of Fort
Thompson, with its guns in position to sweep the
whole clearing in front of the fortifications. Making
what observations they could, they were about to
return when a Rebel was discovered standing on a
stump, hand over his face to shade his eyes, and his
rifle in the other hand. He had evidently seen our
troops, for his eyes were riveted upon the spot they
occupied. "I say, Sergeant," said the Corporal,
"that's about a hundred yards ; I can pop that fellow
io8 The Story of Company A.
as I would a turkey," and he raised his rifle to do
it ; but the orders were not to fire, so they returned
March 14
to the regiment and reported.
Meantime line of battle had been formed in the
edge of the woods, with the enemy's intrenchments
close at hand and in plain sight, the Twenty-fifth
Regiment on the extreme right. We now heard
loud cheering on the left, and knew the Twenty-first
was engaged. We here received the enemy's fire
from the front and from Fort Thompson on the right,
several of the regiment being wounded at the first
Battle of fire from the fort. Our gunboats, too, having as-
New cended the river thus far, were throwing shells over
jy£f*jf£
our heads, which fell short of the Rebel earthworks
and burst directly in our front, fairly shaking the
earth, throwing up columns of dirt, and tearing
great holes in the ground at every explosion. The
position was a bad one, and we were soon with-
drawn and placed further to the left.
The fight was now raging furiously all along the
line. We passed our howitzer battery of four guns ;
here the fight had been severe, and in all directions
lay the dead and wounded of the battery. Bullets
were flying around thick, and solid shot came crash-
ing through the trees. The excitement at this time
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 109
was very great, — firing along the whole line, and
loud cheering away down the left where the gallant
March 14
Twenty-first had made a charge, entered the enemy's
works and were driven out, but had re-formed,
charged and entered the works again, this time to
stay. We, also, were ordered to charge, and with a
wild hurrah we started at double-quick, and in about
as short a time as it takes to write it, our boys were
swarming over the Rebel works like bees ; and the Battle of
colors of the Twenty-fifth were planted in the bat- New
tery. It was claimed that our state colors were
the first that floated over the enemy's intrench-
ments. The distance where the charge was made
between the woods and the earthworks was about
two hundred yards ; and we had but just started
when a solid shot — evidently from Fort Thompson
— came tearing along, struck a tree on our right,
glanced, and going through the ranks of Company
A, killed comrade Eli Pike. The shot struck him
in the side and mangled him shockingly. We could
not stop; one glance, as we passed over him — •a.
quivering, bleeding mass of humanity — was the last
we saw of Eli Pike, \hefirst of Company A to die
on the battle field.
1 10 The Story of Company A.
It was a horrible sight as we entered the enemy's
Mar h* wor^s — dead and dying men, dead and dying horses,
in every conceivable position, some alone, others in
little heaps of two or three, all smeared with blood
Battle of and begrimed with powder and dirt. Many, per-
B haps most, of the Rebels, were shot in the head. We
noticed a dead Rebel soldier, seated on a log, his
rifle beside him, and his back supported against a
tree. He had been shot in the act of eating a piece
of bread ; the mouthful bitten off remained between
his teeth, while the right hand still holding the loaf
was raised to his lips. Death had come like a flash,
and his limbs were rigid in an instant. This was a
very singular case.
The enemy were now in full retreat towards New
Berne, a portion of one regiment marching off in
etreatof Q(j or(jer with colors flying ; but the road, as was
the enemy. s ' & '
the case at Roanoke, was strewn with guns and
equipments thrown away in the hasty flight. Our
regiment formed soon after, and Company A was
sent to skirmish through the woods towards the
railroad, which we did, capturing many prisoners,
then following the railroad towards New Berne,
where were crowds of Rebels flying to the city.
. .._ ^.. -
W V x 2
v» p* f , -
'
V V
\
2$th Regt., Mass. Vols. in
On either side were seen many of the enemy making
T Rfio
signs which indicated their desire to surrender.
Gen. Foster on horseback rode along with Com-
pany A as we pushed on towards the town. We
soon noticed a huge column of black smoke rising
high over New Berne, and saw at once that the
Rebels had set the city on fire — a Moscow on a
small scale ! We soon reached the Trent River,
and found the railroad bridge, some fifteen hundred
feet long, in flames and rapidly going to destruction.
We stopped but a short time on the banks of the
Trent, and then crossed over in small steamers and
New
took possession of the town. The gunboats all this Berne.
time had been fighting their way up the river, reach-
ing the town before the troops, and were assisting
in putting out the fires.
So ended the Battle of New Berne, with a loss to
the Twenty-fifth Regiment of twenty-six killed and
wounded. Our Company had one man killed. The
total Union loss was one hundred killed and about
five hundred wounded. We captured several hun-
dred prisoners, thousands of muskets, thirty pieces
of artillery, and a large quantity of ammunition. The
Rebel loss in killed and wounded is not known, but
probably it was less than ours.
15
CHAPTER VII.
NEW BERNE AND CAMP OLIVER.
— HPHE BUILDING in New Berne occupied by
Company A was known as the Merchants' Bank,
and was located on Craven street. The door was
locked, but the axes of the pioneers had opened it,
and we were at once in comfortable quarters. The
building had been cleaned out, but we had a nice
Our
quarters, shelter, and it was a striking contrast to the last few
days, — one night we bivouac in the woods in mud
and rain, the next we are in a brick house in town,
sleeping on mattresses borrowed from the neighbors.
This is the ebb and flow of a soldier's life — famine
one day, feast the next.
Tired out as we were with the work of the last
few days, we were glad of a chance to rest. This
battle of New Berne was fought on Friday. We
also landed at Roanoke on a Friday — unlucky days
for somebody, but not for us.
Regt., Mass. Vols. 113
"Saturday morning found us all right, and after
breakfast there was a general scouting around for " 2*
— of course — something to eat ; and the result of
this still hunting was a dinner — shall I describe it ?
Turkeys, two kinds, boiled and stewed ; hot biscuit
and butter ; and — tell it not — syrup, preserved
peaches and honey. How did we do it ? The boys
of Company A were always in luck. We found one
room in the bank building which was locked ; we ,.r
dinner.
opened it, and found it was the store-room of the
family that had resided in the building. Here were
all sorts of preserved fruit in goodly quantities, —
peaches, tamarinds, berries, etc. ; and the "scouts"
brought in butter, flour, turkeys, and a solitary
chicken."
We enjoyed now, for a short time, the poetry of
soldiering, — comfortable quarters and duty light.
It seemed strange to wander about the streets of
the captured city ; all was new to northern eyes.
Most of the houses were abandoned, but some were
left with the oldest slaves, while the younger and
most valuable ones had been taken away. Streets
deserted and silent, save when the stillness was
broken by the tramp of the soldier, the citizens —
those who remained — keeping inside their houses.
H4 The Story of Company A.
Black faces peered at us from all quarters, and pieces
of white cloth waved from every corner and Negro
shanty. The slaves did not appear to be afraid of
the soldiers, although they had been taught to fear
us.
The soldiers and sailors had free run in New
Berne for the first twenty-four hours, and then the
place settled down in peace and quiet under military
rule. Of course there was more or less pillaging,
but little harm was done ; indeed the Union soldiers
saved the place from destruction by fire at the hands
of its citizens and the Rebel soldiery. The people
left New Berne in a perfect panic, and the streets .
ic an<^ roads were covered with all sorts of property —
household goods, clothing, wagons, and such like.
A beautiful piano was found in one street, and soon
after it might have been seen in the soldiers' quar-
ters, the music taken out, and horses feeding from
the case.
" I noticed a pleasant-looking house one day when
on guard, and found it no exception to the general
rule — it was deserted, and nearly everything of value
had been carried away. There were several horses
in the stable and cows in the field. A few slaves
stood around looking in stupid wonder at the strange
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 115
visitors. 'Massa's goned away,' they said. I went
over the house ; a piano with a pile of sheet music, x
a poodle dog, a cage of canaries, and a large cat,
indicated refinement and taste ; but now desolation
had swept over everything. On the opposite side
of the road was a large vineyard ; a few weeks later
Fort Totten had sprung up there and the vineyard
had disappeared. It would have been wiser for the
owners to have stayed on the premises and taken
the oath of allegiance, for then they would have
been protected ; but this shows how great was their
fright."
Negroes began to come in from the country
around, some from Goldsboro,' who reported no for- Negroes-
tifications between that place and New Berne ; but
"dey is makin some." It would seem that then was
the time to have cleaned out the enemy as far as
Goldsboro.'
The Rebels were very thoughtful in one way cer-
tainly, for they had a train of cars all ready in case
of disaster to their army, and it worked very nicely
for them, for the train went through New Berne
in a hurry, crowded with soldiers skedaddling from
the Boys in Blue.
1 1 6 The Story of Company A.
Guard duty was about all there was for us to do
for awhile ; orders were very strict, and after a cer-
tain hour at night all persons found without passes
were to be arrested, so it made a deal of work. One
night three or four sailors were brought into the
guard-house drunk, one nearly insensible. This one
died before morning in consequence of his debauch.
We saw here for the first time women and chil-
dren practicing the disgusting habit of snuff dipping.
A small stick was dipped into a snuff box and the
C -ff
dippers. end is then rubbed over the teeth and gums, talking
while the operation is going on, the stick protruding
from the mouth.
"A visit to the battle ground gave us a better
idea of the strength of the fortifications, and of the
work performed in the late battle. There were over
twenty vessels in the blockade, mostly schooners
and brigs, and some appeared to be new. Mount-
ing the breastwork we walked from Fort Thompson
The battle
ground. on "*e Ncuse River to the railroad, a distance of
one and a half miles without a break, save where
the county road passed through. The position was
a very strong one, and ^pon first thought it seems
as if it could have been held ; but the gunboats
settled the matter by breaking the blockade, and
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 117
flanking the enemy's works, furnishing material aid
T Rfio
in the capture of New Berne."
March 25th, our building being wanted for a hos-
pital, our officers selected for company quarters
another brick house on Johnston street, furnished
with marble chimney pieces, mirrors, and a clock,
and surrounded with a large garden, with flowers
and peach trees in bloom. It was in a fine neighbor-
hood, quiet and retired — who wouldn't be a soger !
We found an old cooking stove in the cellar, and
set it up. Warm biscuit, baked beans, etc. followed.
Company A was always in luck.
Sunday, March 3Oth, the whole regiment turned
out and marched to church. It was a curious sight
— pews filled with Blue Coats and glittering bay-
onets, six soldiers and six rifles to a pew, darkies
peering in at doors and windows,^ the star spangled
banner in one corner, while Chaplain James in the
pulpit completed the picture.
At this time troops were coming into New Berne
in large numbers, and camps were forming all about.
The Twenty-fifth Regiment had been the first to
enter the city, headed by Company A.
The city of New Berne is situated at the junction
of the Neuse and Trent rivers, and is prettily laid
1 1 8 The Story of Company A.
out, with streets straight and wide and completely
shaded with large trees. The gardens of New Berne,
when properly cared for, must have made the place
an earthly paradise. An endless variety of flowers
could be found here, and the floral procession con-
tinued, seemingly, all through the year. Beautiful
_ - . +. <j * <j J
Natural . . . . . . 1-11
beauties, birds made music among the trees, and at night the
mocking bird tuned his varied lays. Nature had
scattered here her benefits in lavish profusion, and
grim war with all its terrors could not neutralize her
power. The city contained about twelve hundred
white inhabitants at the time of its capture.
In the latter part of March, Major McCafferty
resigned, and our Captain was promoted to be
Major of the Regiment, First Lieutenant Frank E.
Goodwin being advanced to the command of the
Changes (^ortlpany ^ jn consequence of this change Com-
pany A became the eighth in line, instead of hold-
ing the right of the Regiment, a position we had
been proud of. It was rather disheartening. Offi-
cers go up, companies go down — in rank. We
talked the matter over in our quarters. Had not he
led us in two victories ? Had not we achieved honor
and a name under his command ? So we concluded
to promote him — our pony Captain — to be Major ;
2$th Regt., Mass. Vols. 119
but the trouble did not end here, for in October -
following Lieutenant-Colonel Sprague resigned, and I°"2>
soon after Colonel Upton did likewise, which left
Major Pickett in command of the Twenty-fifth Reg-
iment as Colonel. So we promoted him again, and
we thought the eagles looked better on his shoulders
than the captain's bars. Nor was this all ; at his
muster-out, in January, 1865, he was breveted Brig-
adier-General ; and although Company A was mus-
tered out the preceding October, still we rejoiced
at his promotion.
On the 9th of May the Regiment left New Berne
and went on picket duty at the Red House, a place
we became very familiar with, as well as with Old
Bogey, the owner, before we left New Berne. This
place was about nine miles from New Berne, and
half-way between the Neuse and Trent rivers.
By noon the Regiment was on the ground, and
Camp Bullock was formed, named in honor of Hon.
Alexander H. Bullock, of Worcester, Mass. Here camp
Sibley tents took the place of our old A tents. On Bullock-
the 1 3th, a scouting party under Col. Upton, visited
the place called Tuscarora, four or five miles distant.
The enemy had an outpost here, and they fled on
16
1 20 The Story of Company A.
our approach, setting fire to a mill before they de-
1862. , ,-p,. ,. . .,
parted. Ihe expedition was of no great account,
except in giving us experience in the sort of work
tions. we should have to do in North Carolina.
On the 1 5th of May the Regiment left Camp
Bullock, and marched towards Trenton. We had
with us the Seventeenth Massachusetts, some of the
Third New York Cavalry (seven companies), and
the Third Rhode Island Artillery. The cavalry had
all the fighting, losing two men and killing eight or
ten of the enemy, while the infantry marched there
and back, twenty-five miles, without firing a shot.
Denny, in his "Wearing the Blue," relates the
comical story of Bogey's old white mare alarming
the pickets. The plantation of Mr. Bogey was sur-
rounded by woods, and contained perhaps twenty
acres. It was situated at the cross roads, one lead-
ing to New Berne, one to Tuscarora, and one to
Bachellor's Creek.
On the 25th of May the Regiment left the Red
House and marched back to New Berne, where
Camp camp Oliver was formed, supposed to be named in
Oliver.
honor of Gen. H. K. Oliver, Adjutant-General of
Massachusetts.
2 5th Regt., Mass. Vols. 121
The extensive pine forests which cover a great
part of eastern North Carolina, furnished the prin- I 2t
cipal supply of the tar, turpentine and rosin of com-
merce. The forests are almost entirely destitute of
birds, and in their depths the stillness is actually
oppressive ; and so dense is their growth that the
rays of the sun, even at noonday, can scarcely pen- s(s
etrate the sombre shade. A pine forest is a lonely
world at its best ; it lacks entirely the characteristics
of other forests, — the variety of leaves, the fragrant
undergrowth of bush and shrub, the different forms
of the trees — all these are wanting. It is monoto-
nous and the eye tires of it. It has not the cheer-
ful look of other forests ; and while the wind rustles
merrily among other trees, it moans and sighs
through the pines. It affected the spirits of the
men in marching through them ; lively and gay
as the boys usually were, they soon became sober
and quieted down very much while passing through
these dismal shades.
The weather through the month of June was very
warm, but the 4th of July was cool and comfortable.
We had an eloquent oration delivered in a church „
July 4th.
by Chaplain Horace James. He compared the
Rebellion of '76 with that of '61. At night we had
122 The Story of Company A.
a big bonfire iff our camp, and all the regimental
bands united gave us music. The usual salutes were
fired morning and evening. So passed our 4th of
July-
July 25th an expedition was made to Trenton
again, the Twenty-fifth and Twenty-seventh Massa-
tions. chusetts with Belger's Rhode Island Battery com-
posing the detachment. We returned to New Berne
the next day. August 6th, another expedition went
out from New Berne on a scout, and returned on
the ;th.
The latter part of August our Regimental Band
was discharged. This was regretted by all. We had
the best band in the department, and the loss was
Band dis-
charged, felt by the whole body of troops in New Berne.
From this time the Regiment had drums and fifes
only.
Thus life in New Berne glided away, and the
summer of 1862 passed quickly and pleasantly.
So far the health of the Company had been good,
though many of the boys had been troubled with
chills and fever ; but no malady of a serious nature
had appeared. Recruits had been coming in to the
Regiment, and Company A had received its share
of first rate men, and we were glad to see them.
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 123
We had fruit in abundance at New Berne — figs,
persimmons, grapes, melons, etc. — all good ; apples,
too, but none like those of New England. Sweet
potatoes were abundant.
At the rear of Camp Oliver was a large swamp in
which was a considerable body of water. There
were a few trees growing there. It was a pleasant
sight to see wild ducks swimming about in this
. Novel
swamp so near us. One morning we saw eleven sighis>
white cranes on one tree, presenting a very curious
sight. No one was allowed to fire at them, and
they appeared as unconcerned as if they were in the
wilderness.
David Bigelow and Charley Bartlett, wounded at
Roanoke, had returned to the Company, and were
now on duty as usual.
August 2oth found Company A on picket at the
so called Harrison House, some four or five miles
from New Berne. We were accompanied by Com-
pany C. The camp here was known as Camp Inge.
Life on picket was vastly more pleasant than the Picket
ordinary round of camp duty — there was more free-
dom and less irksome (though necessary) drill, with
just danger enough to give a sort of fascination to
it, and keep the boys wide awake. The picket camp
1 24 The Story of Company A.
was about half a mile in the rear of the picket lines,
and was fixed up as comfortable as could be. The
boys made tables, stools, and bough houses, and
built ovens ; washed their clothes and did their
mending; read, wrote, smoked, played cards, etc.;
but were ready for a "Fall in, A" at any moment.
The picket guard was relieved every morning from
the camp. Unless there was danger in so doing,
the boys on picket duty built fire enough to cook
their coffee and make themselves comfortable, a con-
stant vigilance of course being kept up. Generally
there were three men on each post, and one con-
stantly on guard. As night comes on no fires are
allowed, and when darkness covers the scene the
Picket
duty, objects so familiar by daylight assume a different
look — as one of the boys expressed it : "The stumps
begin to walk, and everything moves." The soldier
on his lonely post will be startled by sounds he
would not notice by daylight — the snapping of a
twig near him, or the tread of some wild animal,
will keep him wide awake ; and often, when no wind
is stirring, a tree will fall with a tremendous crash
that will awaken the echoes of the forest. Again,
the wind rises, and the woods so still before are
now filled with new and strange sounds ; or perhaps
Regt., Mass. Vols. 125
a storm comes on, and with getting chilled and
drenched with rain, the night drags slowly away ;
but morning comes at last, and with it the ever wel-
come relief.
The picket line extended from the Neuse to the
Trent rivers, and all were anxious to be "out on
picket." It was when on such duty that Charley
Knowlton caught the deer. Charley had heard the
darkies say they had "seen deer run in dese ere
woods"; and at once visions of venison steak flitted
i • • . , i . , Knowlton
across his imagination, and he soon, with some as- d his
sistance, slyly dug a pit in the path in which the deer pit.
deer were supposed to run, and carefully covered it.
For several days nothing disturbed the pit, but one
morning early he found the game was caught, but
it was a poor, sick cavalry horse. There he was,
sticking his nose out of the pit. What was to be
done ? — they could not get him out, and it would
not do to let him remain where he was. So Charley
— full of expedients — shot the poor old horse, and
buried him in the pit he had dug for the deer. There
is more than one way — even out of a pit.
One day while at Camp Inge a severe thunder
storm came up ; the boys off duty were lying list-
lessly in their tents, their rifles in a circle around
126 The Story of Company A.
each center pole. A sharp flash of lightning
came with a loud clap of thunder, and struck in the
An camp, killing a horse. Part of the bolt went down
incident, one of the tent poles, scattered the rifles in every
direction, but did no harm to the boys in the tent.
This was only an incident in a soldier's life.
Noon of September 23rd found Company A again
at Camp Oliver. At night fires were built in the
company streets — a sanitary measure — and we
turned in at "taps," tired, but a merry lot of soldiers.
On the 24th of September Comrade Lucius F.
Kingman died of diptheria after a few days' illness.
He was a noble fellow — kind hearted, pleasant, and
a true soldier. He was buried at New Berne.
Some months before, just after the Battle of
Roanoke, Comrade Thomas Earle, somewhat to the
surprise of the other members, left the Company
A on a furlough, and went back to Massachusetts ; and
promotion great was the astonishment when, after the Battle
of New Berne, he returned a lieutenant in the same
company he had left thirty days before as a private
soldier. It was rather galling to the rest, but queer
things happen in the army frequently. It would
seem almost as a rule that commissions were not
won in the field, but obtained through influence
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 127
at home. September i, Lieutenant Earle resigned
— a privilege officers have ; privates, if I remember
rightly, do not have that privilege — and this brought
about other changes in the Company. "Old Posey"
became Second Lieutenant, and Burr, or "Birdie"
was made Orderly Sergeant, the vacancies in the
Sergeants' ranks being filled by others.
It may be well, in this place to give a list of the
boys of "Old Company A" who received commis-
sions. It will be seen that some were commissioned
in other regiments ; but, while we did not like to
part with old faces, we rejoiced at the good fortune
of those who obtained promotion, and we regarded
it as additional honor to the Company.
LIST OF PROMOTIONS OF CO. A MEN.
Captain Josiah Pickett, to Maj. and Col. 25th ;
Bv. Brig.-Gen.
First Lieut. F. E. Goodwin, to Capt.
Second Lieut. M. B. Bessey, to ist Lt. & Capt.
Orderly Sergeant G. A. Johnson, to Second
Lieut.
Sergeant Geo. Burr, to First Lieut.
Sergeant J. J. McLane, to Second Lieut, "ist
N. C. Union Vols.
128 The Story of Company A.
Corporal Jaalam Gates, to Capt. U. S. Colored
1862. r~
1 roops.
Corporal John A. Chenery, to First Lieut and
Adjutant, ist N. C. Union Vols.
Corporal Lewis J. Elwell, to Sergeant Major.
Private Thomas Earle, to Second Lieut.
Private James M. Hervey, to First Lieut. N. C.
Union Vols.
motions Private John L. Goodwin, to ist Lt., 57th Mass.
Private C. L. Hutchins, to Lieut. LT. S. Vols.
Private S. W. Phillips, to First Lieut. U. S.
Colored Troops.
Private Henry W. Reed, to Signal Corps.
Private Geo. L. Seagrave, to First Lieut. U. S.
Colored Troops.
Private Hiram Staples, to Signal Corps.
Private Augustus Stone, to Second Lieut., 4th
Mass. Heavy Artillery.
Private Julius M. Tucker, to First Lieut., 57th
Mass.
Private Hale Wesson, to Signal Corps.
Private C. B. Kendall, to Lieut., Adj. & Capt.
Private Sylvanus Bullock, to Lieut. U. S. Vols.
Private T. M. Ward, to ist Lieut, and Capt.
Private Edwin A. Morse, to Lieut. 36th Mass.
Regt., Mass. Vols. 129
September i5th the Regiment left New Berne
. . . r 1862.
with other troops on transport steamers, and alter a
delightful day's sail through Pamlico and Albemarle
Sounds, passing Roanoke Island on the way, reached
Plymouth, at the mouth of the Roanoke River. The
object intended was an invasion of the interior
of the State, but that being abandoned, we returned
to New Berne, having enjoyed a fine excursion of
over four hundred miles.
Colonel Upton left for home October 28. Ill
health and other considerations compelled him to tion *
sever his connection with the Regiment, to the re- c°l-
gret both of himself and his command. An elegant
sword, which cost one thousand dollars, was pre-
sented to him by the private soldiers of the Regi-
ment, as a token of their esteem.
CHAPTER VIII.
EXPEDITIONS.
(~)N THE 3Oth of October six companies of the
1862. Regiment left New Berne in light marching order,
and going on bqard transports, sailed for Washing-
ton, N. C., one hundred miles distant. During
our brief stay at this place Company A was quar-
tered in a large tobacco warehouse ; and for amuse-
ment, squads were sent out to pick up negroes and
bring them to the quarters, where they were made
to show their agility in dancing. One old darky
Fun with was brought i°> a ring formed around him, and he
the was told to dance. "But I'se got de rheumatiz," he
said. "Never mind, you must dance," and the boys
struck up a low, monotonous tune, keeping time by
patting their hands on their knees. The old fellow
began to dance slowly and clumsily at first, but as
he warmed up he threw off his jacket and shook his
2$th Regt., Mass. Vols. 131
heels as lively as a boy, the soldiers shouting, "Go
it, rheumatiz," "Sail in, old rheumatics," "Go it
while you're young," and the like. The old man
appeared to enjoy it as well as the boys, and when
he became tired he put on his old ragged coat, and
walked away laughing heartily. Another negro was
brought in — a young fellow. "I can't dance for you,
sogers," "Suppose you try," said one of the boys.
"I can't, I'se religious." "The h — 1 you are," said
one. "Does it hurt you much ?" said another. "What
church do you belong to?" asked the third. "I'se
a Methodis," he responded. "Let him go, boys,"
said the Sergeant, and he walked quietly away.
Another was brought in, struggling violently with
the soldiers, who were trying to pacify him by telling
him no harm was intended. Once in the ring, he
looked wildly around, then making a sudden spring
he broke through the crowd and ran like a deer,
amid the shouts of the boys.
When we reached Washington the artillery and
cavalry coming overland from New Berne had not
arrived, and we were obliged to wait for them. Col. tnston-
Pickett said he did not wish to confine the men to
quarters while in Washington, but would give them
the run of the town. There was to be no rioting or
132 The Story of Company A.
pillaging ; he expected they would behave like men,
and that, at the sound of the drum, every one would
be in his place. Guns were stacked, sentinels posted,
and the boys scattered to seek such amusement as
they thought best. We have seen how Company
A boys amused themselves. It was some three
hours or more before the other troops arrived, but
at the first sound of the drum the men came troop-
ing from all directions, and before it ceased beating
every one was in place, and every gun taken when
the order "take arms" was given. The Colonel was
much pleased, and complimented the boys on their
promptness.
We left Sunday morning, November 2nd, march-
ing through a thinly settled country, the Twenty-
TarborJ ^\h having the tedious duty of guarding the baggage
march, train. About the middle of the afternoon the ad-
vance (Forty-fourth Mass., nine months' men) met
the enemy and had a skirmish, with a small loss to
the Union troops, the cavalry and artillery doing
most of the fighting. This skirmish took place at
an extensive swamp through which flowed a con-
siderable stream of water that crossed the road we
were traveling ; at this point was the fighting, and
we passed several dead Rebels, one rolled in his
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 133
blanket, with his head bound up. Broken cannon
also lay here. We soon after bivouacked for the
night. This place was called Rawl's Mill.
Early morning saw us again on the road, and
marching through a much better country. Williams-
ton, on the Roanoke River, was reached about
noon. This was a pretty village of ten or twelve
hundred inhabitants. We halted here until 4 p. M.,
and in the meantime set about getting something
On the
to eat as usual. Our foragers were very successful,
and brought in a variety of food. For instance, we
had beef, hog, sheep, chickens — all just killed, and
salt horse. Soldiers say, "Live to-day if you die to-
morrow." We were marching through a good
country and lived accordingly.
The march was resumed, the route turning for a
few miles towards Hamilton, and by 10 P. M. we
again went into bivouac. Sunrise next morning
found us once more on the road, and our march was
through woods at times on fire both sides of the
way. At noon we came to a more open country,
near what is known as Rainbow Bluff. It was un-
derstood we might have trouble here, but we found
no opposition. This bluff, forty or fifty feet above
the water, had been strongly fortified, and com-
134 The Story of Company A.
manded the river, but the enemy had disappeared.
We found our gunboats at this point ; they were to
ascend the river while we continued our march
towards Hamilton. This place, another pretty vil-
lage of a few hundred people, was reached about 3
p. M., and we had a rest, with a "good square meal,"
until 6 o'clock, when we heard the order "Fall in."
Thus far the country was much better than around
New Berne.
During our halt near Williamston we found with
other plunder, a number of square wooden bee hives.
Quicker than it could be spoken the hives were
burst open and the contents distributed among the
boys. Ludicrous sight — a score of soldiers eating
honey in the comb like so much bread and butter.
Comrade Goulding found here in a house a small
- cask partly filled with wine. The darkies said it was
"fe church wine for de communion." "The d — 1,"
said Goulding, "you bet it belongs to Company A
now, the best way you can cook it"; and I think it
did, for Company A disposed of it. In bringing it
to the bivouac fire he had shaken it up so much that
it was roiled and did not look clear and inviting.
He offered some to Captain Goodwin, who looked
at it, smelled of it, and finally tasted it. "Goulding,
Regt., Mass. Vols. 135
it will kill you to drink that stuff." "Happy death!"
1862.
said Goulding, as he swallowed a generous allow-
ance of the stuff. He survived.
At about 10 P. M. we left Hamilton in flames,
supposed to have been set by the sailors. Some
thought our own boys were responsible for it. Be Burning
that as it may, we marched from the town by the of
light of its burning houses. It was a wild sight —
crowds of sailors and soldiers marching through the
burning streets ; bayonets glistening, flames roaring,
and timbers crashing. This was war.
The next day's march was a long and tedious one.
We started at early dawn, and, with only occasional
halts, marched till midnight, when we bivouacked
in a cornfield within a short distance of the railroad
leading to Tarboro'. We were thoroughly exhausted,
and, pulling up the dry corn stalks and laying them
thickly between the rows, made quite comfortable
beds. A cold northeast storm set in during- the
o comfort.
night, but we slept soundly in spite of it. " I re-
member being awakened by rain dashing in my face,
and feeling about for my cap, which had fallen from
my head, found it half full of water." It was a cold
and cheerless time.
18
136 The Story of Company A,
Trains were heard running very often during the
night, and scouts reported that soldiers by thousands
were pouring into Tarboro'. In consequence of this
information it was decided that an attack upon the
place would be bad policy, and, after a halt of some
hours, we commenced a retreat. On this march
Negroes by hundreds followed us into Plymouth.
treat ^e Passe<^ through Hamilton again, this time in a
heavy snow storm, and we now regretted the burn-
ing of the town. A few Negro cabins were all that
remained of that pretty village. We stayed here all
night, and then pushed on to Williamston ; the roads
were in horrible condition, with snow and mud
several inches deep, and many of the boys' shoes
were in bad shape. Walter Richards ("Shucks,"
as we called him) actually marched miles barefooted,
until we found a pair of shoes for him. We ap-
proached Plymouth, on the Roanoke river, but found
the bridge destroyed, so we bivouacked for the
night while the pioneers reconstructed it.
The march for the last few days had been very
severe, but the boys boiled their coffee, ate their
supper, smoked their pipes, talked over the events
of the day, rolled themselves in their blankets, and
soon — save the sentries' tread as they paced their
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 137
beats — all was quiet around the bivouac fires. "I
1862.
was about to roll myself in my blanket when Jimmy
Wesson touched me on the arm and said : ' Come
out here, I can give you a better room than this';
and following him a short distance I found, to my
surprise, a bed made up, with a fire close by —
Wesson's
feather bed, sheets, blankets, white pillows, and bed.
everything in nice order. 'Turn in here with me ; I
reckon it's all right.' It was quite an inducement,
but I preferred to sleep by the fire." Soldiers make
the best of the situation, and why should they not?
Where did the bed come from ? Borrowed, of course,
from some house on the road. On these expeditions
soldiers took what they wanted wherever it was to
be found, except from houses occupied, where the
soldiers were treated civilly. Probably nine-tenths
of the Southern people would have been better off
if they had stayed at home and tried to take care of
their property, taking the oath of allegiance.
In the morning (Nov. 10) we crossed the bridge
and entered Plymouth. The Twenty-fifth and the
Twenty-seventh, with some cavalry, remained here,
but most of the troops left at once for New Berne.
We had comfortable quarters in a house, but as we
had.no extra clothing and the nights were cold, we
138 The Story of Company A.
suffered some until our blankets were sent on from
New Berne. Plymouth was a very pretty town of
some twelve hundred inhabitants, with two churches,
a hotel, court house, jail, pillory, and whipping post.
The latter the boys of Company A tipped over and
smashed. The streets were shaded with large elm
'trees, as those of many Southern villages were.
Many trees were covered with English ivy hanging
in long festoons from their branches. We feasted
on persimmons while here. This fruit was new to
most of us ; it is a sort of date plum, and is not
palatable until touched or mellowed by frost ; it then
becomes soft and agreeable to the taste. They were
much sought for by the boys during our stay in
Plymouth. Grapes, sweet potatoes, and corn we
also had in abundance.
There was a miller in Plymouth, and the soldiers
would forage for provisions and bring in, with other
stuff, lots of corn, and the miller would grind it for
Deceiving
the miller, them. This was very good. But the miller had a
large lot of corn stored in his mill, and, as the grain
became scarce outside, some of the soldiers managed
slyly to get at the miller's store, and would steal
corn from one end of the mill and carry it around to
the other, and have the miller grind it, he taking
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 139
meal for pay. This trick worked nicely for a short
1862.
time, but it was discovered by the miller at last, and
I am quite sure he did not pray for us, although he
was a very good man. Thus, by this simple process,
we kept the miller busy, and had fresh ground meal
for ourselves. Soldiers are full of expedients, and
this was one.
The Union men in Plymouth had formed a com-
pany of soldiers. We called them "Buffaloes," and
Buffaloes.
they did some good service. Some of our boys
received commissions in these "Buffalo" companies ;
and all agree that they made good soldiers, and
were Union-loving men.
On this Tarboro' march, the Forty-fourth Massa-
chusetts Regiment — nine months' men who had
received quite large bounties — was the best clothed
regiment in the expedition. The march proved
severe for its men, and many of them threw away/?^,.^
their overcoats, which were very nice ones. Our overcoats.
boys "gobbled" them at once, and when we reached
our old camp at New Berne we were much better
off in the way of overcoats than when we left.
On the return march from Hamilton, Jimmy
Wesson picked up an old two-wheeled mule cart
with- mule attached. Jimmy was always very dis-
140 The Story of Company A,
interested ; and this cart would be such a nice thing-
for the boys, to carry the overcoats and blankets of
those who had them, and to help the tired ones by
giving them a ride. He soon had a load, and it
worked well. Just then three or four of the Forty-
Wesson's r , , , .,
m«lecart.uri" ^oys came along pretty well used up, and in
spite of all protests, mounted the cart. Jimmy
quietly got down to "fix the harness a bit," and he
did fix it. Suddenly up went the thills and over
went the cart backwards, tipping out blankets and
overcoats, and laying the Forty-fourth men sprawl-
ing in the dust. They picked themselves up and
beat a retreat amid roars of laughter. Willing hands
helped to reload the cart, and Jimmy rode on in
triumph. Now when we reached Plymouth, and
the boys thankfully received their overcoats from
the cart, the vehicle was found to be more than half
filled with the private plunder of this same disin-
terested Jimmy.
While in Plymouth we heard of the death of Com-
ra^G Edwin D. Waters, of Company A. He was a
fine soldier and a noble-hearted fellow. He hailed
from Millbury, and was about twenty-six years old.
Some thought he actually died from getting low-
spirited and discouraged about the war. No doubt
2$th Regt., Mass. Vols. 141
many soldiers did die from this cause alone. Waters
was in the hospital at New Berne at the time of his
death.
While occupying Plymouth, Captain Parkhurst
was acting Provost Marshal, Colonel Pickett being
in command. On this march we had no clothes
aside from those on our backs, and as weeks went
by, we got into a pretty bad condition. We were
ragged, dirty and — the word must be said — lousy, become
So we concluded to have a washing day, every man lomy"
to be his own washerwoman. Fires were built in the
rear of the house we occupied, kettles procured,
and at it we went. We took off all the clothes we
could possibly spare, and thrust them into the kettles
of boiling water to kill the graybacks (vermin) , and
after some time boiling, gave them a thorough wash-
ing. Meantime a comical sight presented itself —
soldiers moving about trying to keep warm, wearing
an airy costume for the season — army cap, overcoat,
and brogans, — "Only these and nothing more"; but
we came out victorious, for we beat the graybacks.
Many people came into Plymouth from the coun-
try while we were there, coming often many miles
down the river in dugouts — a kind of canoe made
from. a single log. These people were both whites
142 The Story of Company A.
and blacks, and were seeking protection under the
1862.
starry nag.
Thanksgiving day found 'us still at Plymouth,
Company A on guard. Some were posted on board
the schooner Skirmisher to guard prisoners. We
Thanks-
up the time-honored custom as best we could
New
in old North Carolina, and so had a chicken dinner.
When we reached Plymouth our wagon train had
increased much in length, and was over four miles
long.
We left Plymouth on December 8th, passing down
the Roanoke River, which is a narrow but deep
stream, into the Sound past Roanoke Island, and
reached New Berne about 3 P. M. of the loth ; and
were ordered off again at 7 A. M. of the i ith. This
Berne. fe '
was soldiering. We had been absent from New
Berne nearly six weeks, had traveled a distance of
over four hundred miles, and actually marched one
hundred and twenty-five miles.
Immediately on our reaching camp the cooks
were set to work to cook rations for the expedition
of the following day. This is always the first step
in preparing for a march — to get the rations ready.
Little time was there for the ordinary camp gossip
and fun, but what time we had was used to the best
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 143
advantage in putting our shoes and clothing in good
order, overhauling our rifles and equipments, look-
ing into knapsacks, and making everything ship-
shape. A soldier's rifle is supposed to be always
ready. For the first time in six weeks we had an
opportunity to change our shirts.
Large numbers of -troops had been gathered in
New Berne during our absence, so that when the
expedition started, on the morning of December
nth, it comprised four brigades commanded by
General Wessels, and Colonels Amory, Stevenson
and Lee. These brigades were made up of twenty Goidsbor
regiments, of which twelve were Massachusetts men. ^"
The Ninth New Jersey accompanied us as an inde-
pendent organization. Belger's Rhode Island Bat-
tery and portions of other batteries were with the
column, making all told probably twenty thousand
men, and thirty or more pieces of artillery.* The
expedition was commanded by General Foster.
When we started at early daylight of the nth
there was a heavy fog, but it cleared away in an
hour or two. We took the old road to Deep Gully,
beyond which we found the way badly blockaded.
*The column on this Goidsboro' Expedition, including all the troops, with
the wagons necessary for ammunition and supplies, ambulances, etc., could
not have been less than six miles in length.
19
144 The Story of Company A.
Heavy trees had been felled across the road for a
long distance, showing that the enemy had been
busy. The pioneers had a hard job cutting a road
through this blockade, and after a march of a dozen
miles from New Berne we bivouacked for the night.
We had now frosty nights, and in spite of the many
camp fires, we suffered from the cold.
The march of the following day (Dec. 12) was
slow and tedious in the extreme — roads much ob-
structed and bridges destroyed — so we made even
less progress than the day before. As we passed
in the early evening the bright fires of the regiments
already in bivouac, we thought our day's march was
near its end, but not so, for we pushed on, and not
till after midnight did we come to a halt. Saturday,
the 1 3th, the march was resumed, and at a place
called Southwest Creek the enemy made a stand,
but were driven after a smart engagement, in which
Wessels's Brigade, the Ninth New Jersey and the
Twenty-third Massachusetts took part. This was
within five or six miles of Kinston. Our bivouac
this night was wretched and uncomfortable enough,
— the ground cold and wet, and no fires allowed.
Sunday, the i4th, after a short march, it appeared
4k
that the enemy was determined to make a decided
Regt., Mass. Vols. 145
stand. The brigade of Wessels was again engaged,
together with the Seventeenth, Twenty-third, Twen-
ty-fifth and Forty-fifth Massachusetts, and the Ninth
New Jersey. The cannonading was very heavy, as
was also the musketry firing ; and we knew, as we
lay on the ground waiting for our turn to go in, that
Dec. 14.
the struggle was a fierce one. Soon the wounded Battie Of
began to be brought to the rear, and we had full
benefit of the sight as the grim procession passed
close by us, still the boys chatted gaily as they talked
over the situation. "How does it go?" asked one
of our men of a soldier who was assisting in bring-
ing out the wounded. "We are driving them" was
the reply ; and we all sprung to our feet as we heard
the order, "Fall in Twenty-fifth." We moved rapidly
into the woods, and noticed on either side of the
way the ground thickly dotted with the bodies of
the Blue and the Gray.
At this time the enemy had again fallen back, and
on getting through the woods we halted near an old
weather-beaten, dismal-looking building, said to be
a church. Parties were detailed to bury the dead ;
Lieutenant Tew appeared to have command. He
approached near where we were, with two men
bearing a stretcher, and stopped to pick up a dead
146 The Story of Company A.
Johnny (Rebel). The body was placed on the
stretcher, one arm projecting over the side. The
Lieutenant bent the arm over the body, when it
immediately returned to its^ first position. Again
he replaced it and again it moved back as before.
stubborn ^e Lieutenant looked a bit provoked, but tried it
Rebel, the third time with jhe same result. He straightened
up, and with a look that meant business, exclaimed,
"By G — d, Johnny, I can fix you," and thrust the
offending hand into the jacket of the dead Rebel.
This time it stayed, and the stretcher moved on.
Shallow trenches, not much over two feet deep,
were dug, and side by side the dead were placed
therein, their faces covered, and as carefully as
possible the earth was hastily thrown over them,
Has*y and the order given to fall in. This may seem
hard — as one of our boys expressed it : "It's kind o'
rough, ain't it fellers?" But there was no other way
— nothing else could be done under the circum-
stances ; so we marched on and left them in their —
is the next word GLORY ?
We reached the Neuse River, fairly overlooking
the town of Kinston. A bridge was here, and it
was said that General Foster sent a flag of truce
demanding a surrender. Rebel General Evans did
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 147
not see it in that light and politely declined the
honor. Foster ordered up a battery and threw
shells clear over the town ; the enemy departed, and
we crossed the bridge and occupied the place. The
Twenty-fifth bivouacked near the river in an open
field. Fires were built, but first we had to get the
We
fence rails. "As a cold kitten makes for a warm occupy
brick, so does a cold and hungry soldier go for dry Kinston-
fence rails." (A soldier's proverb, and a very true
one.) We took fences and tore down buildings
for firewood, cooked our coffee, ate our supper of
hard-tack, salt horse and sweet potatoes roasted in
the ashes, and then went visiting to look over the
property and see what we could find. Until a late
hour that night the boys were returning to the
bivouac fire bringing all sorts of stuff to eat and
drink. This seemed to be a great wine country,
and we got hold of some very good wine, and apple
jack or apple brandy, a more plebeian drink but quite
passable. We found sweet potatoes in any quantity,
and one goose — mighty tough it was too, after hours
of boiling. We also found much tobacco.
There was a fire in Kinston that night, and no
one seemed to know how it came about. Did
Goulding know ?
148 The Story of Company A.
As we would have to march early in the morning
there was no way to carry the eatables, so they were
cooked at once, and we ate the eatables and drank
the drinkables, and so settled that little matter in
the quickest way. Now there was, strictly speaking,
no pillaging — no houses were interfered with that
were inhabited — but there is no doubt about it,
chickens, pigs and "such like" did suffer some ; and
all this on Sunday, December i4th, 1862.
On the 1 5th the column was moving again. We
recrossed the bridge over the Neuse, which we then
destroyed, and pushed on towards Whitehall, making
a long march of from sixteen to eighteen miles, and
coming to a halt late in the evening about* three
miles from the town. Here, on the morning of the
*' 1 6th, a lively skirmish took place, the enemy being
posted on the opposite side of the river. For hours
the artillery firing was very heavy, and the Rebel
sharpshooters annoyed our troops very much. So
one hundred sharpshooters were called for from
the Twenty-fifth ; ten or twelve went from Company
A, and all these men did excellent service. After
three or four hours of this fighting, in which the
artillery played a conspicuous part, the enemy with-
drew, and our troops moved on, coming to a halt
2$th Regt., Mass. Vols. 149
a few miles from Goldsboro'. Our troops destroyed
a ram that was building at Kinston. The loss to
the Union side in this affair was seventy to eighty
killed and wounded.
At night, as we sat around the bivouac fire talk-
ing over the events of the day, our sharpshooters
began to come in. We had been talking about
them ; some had been wounded, and one — Moses
P. Brown — was reported killed. This Brown was a
happy-go-lucky sort of chap, good-natured, great
for foraging ; and every one seemed sorry that he
was killed. "He was not so bad a fellow after all,"
said one. "That's so," said another, "good-hearted Brown
boy," and so on. Just at that moment who should
J J Brown
appear but Brown himself, loaded as usual with living.
plunder, which he threw down at our feet with his
cheery "Hello, fellers." We were astonished. "Well,
I'll be blowed," said one, "if here ain't that cussed
Brown." How soldier-like — praising him when we
thought him dead, cursing him when we found he
was alive.
Brown was indeed well loaded down with (of
course) eatables. A ham stuck on his bayonet, a
pair of chickens, and a bag of sweet potatoes, were
the principal things.
150 The Story of Company A.
On the morning of the lyth our brigade (Col.
Lee) had the advance, and after a short march
through pine forests, we heard the sharp reports of
rifles ahead, and knew that the enemy had made
another stand. At this time a battery came tearing
down the road, passed rapidly through the column
on its way to the front, and turning into the fields
on the right, crossed a small stream, and took a
position on a slight elevation that commanded the
Dec. 17. meacjow m frOnt and the railroad beyond. Behind
Battle of
railroad stood the Rebel brigades, said to be
commanded by Evans and Clingman, with Pettigrew
as a support. Our regiment crossed the stream,
which was small and shallow, and took a position to
the left of the battery, which opened on the enemy
and made quick work with them. They were thrown
into disorder, and soon were in full retreat. They
fell back across the river and again formed, when
the battery took another position and we followed,
and coming to a halt, laid down on the ground close
to and in front of the guns, which opened again on
the enemy, sending shell directly over our heads.
"Lay low, Twenty-fifth," sung out the battery boys ;
and I think we did. "Down your colors." The
flag held upright, was brought down to the ground
2 $th Regt., Mass. Vols. 151
as directed. The battery boys behaved splendidly ;
we could hear the orders given to them, and see how
quickly they were obeyed. ' It was like the working
of a machine. Meantime regiments had been sent
to destroy the railroad ; this was a remarkable sight.
A regiment formed beside the track, and at the word
Battle of
all lifted at once and rolled the track right over and
down the bank. Some built fires of sleepers, and
laying rails across piled others on them, thus bend-
ing the iron out of shape. A Lieutenant Graham,
of the Twenty-third New York Battery, volunteered
to burn the railroad bridge, which he did successfully,
performing a most perilous feat.
The enemy had again been forced to retire, and
we were ordered to fall back, which we did, crossing
the little stream again. As we were to be the rear
guard we waited for the column to pass. It was
quite late in the afternoon, and we were resting
quietly, feeling that our day's work was about done,
when we noticed a commotion among the battery
boys. The cavalry, too, we could see were uneasy,
and appeared to be looking intently to the front.
Soon we heard the Rebel yell, apparently in the
same meadow from which they had been driven,
and knew there was trouble ahead. We saw the
20
152 The Story of Company A.
battery men move the guns forward. Then a call
was made for support, and we were ordered back to
the field. The enemy charged on our guns, and
the batteries began to speak. It was a sight to see
how rapidly they were fired. We crossed the little
Battle of i i i i • i • • i
Goldsbord, stream once more, reached the desired position, and
laid down in close column by division, almost under
the guns of Belger's Battery, which we were to sup-
port. In the meantime the Rebels formed in three
lines and were making for our guns, but these were
taking care of themselves. We could hear the boys
at the battery talk coolly with each other. "Here is
a shot for the old flag! " they shouted as a gun was
fired, and a shell went screaming through the air on
its deadly mission, making a great lane through the
ranks of the Gray. "Here is one for Uncle Abe !"
"Here's one for the Twenty-fifth ! " and "Here is
one for the devil ! " as the guns were fired in rapid
succession. No machine could have worked more
steadily than did Belger's Battery in the fight at
Goldsboro' Bridge.
And now the Twenty-fifth boys began to go
wounded to the rear. We were in a bad place ;
shots from both sides passed over our heads, and
we could not fire a gun. Our time had not come —
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 153
it did not come in that battle. Our cavalry had
, . . 1862.
meantime charged over and over again, and against
that terrible fire from Belger's and Morrison's bat-
teries no human power could stand, so the Rebels
fell back across the meadow and beyond the rail-
road out of sight, leaving the ground thickly strewn
with their dead and wounded.
"We were all lying on the ground, shots flying
thickly around us, orders to lay low. Col. Pickett,
expecting an order to advance his regiment, had
mounted a stump, and was carefully looking the Pi^ifs
ground over in his front to get his bearings. 'Lay
low, boys,' he repeated, when a soldier looked up
at him with the very pat question, 'Why don't you
lay low yourself, Colonel?' We heard no answer
to the question, but did hear sundry expressions, as
'Good hit,' 'Pretty well put,' and the like."
Again we fell back, but the little stream we had
crossed so many times was now swollen to a broad,
deep, swift-running torrent, still rising ; but we
jumped in and struggled through as best we could,
holding rifles and cartridge boxes high to keep them
dry. The cavalry and artillery had no trouble in
crossing, but many of the infantry boys were washed
down stream ; some got out and some were lost.
154 The. Story of Company A.
It was now dark and grew cold very fast ; we were
1862. .
in a sad plight for our clothes froze on us as we
marched. We soon reached the woods ; these had
been set on fire by the troops ahead of us, but this
served a good purpose, for it helped to make us
Burning _ .
forest warm- It was a thrilling sight ; the names were
roaring on both sides of the road, and ahead it was
one mass of fire — a glimpse of hell ! The sudden rise
of the stream was accounted for by the breaking of
a dam, some said by the enemy, others by cannon
shot.
We bivouacked long after midnight in a corn field.
On the 1 8th we marched all day with only a halt
long enough to cook our coffee. Forest on fire as
before. "At night, being unable to sleep, I took a
stroll through the silent camp. It was midnight,
and the fires were burning low, but still bright
enough to throw a faint light over the whole camp
and its sleeping soldiers. The long line of guns
stacked were plainly to be seen. Around and under
their guns were the forms of the battery boys, sleep-
ing quietly as kittens ; their horses closely guarded
and carefully cared for, were near by. In the dis-
tance could be seen the gleam of moving bayonets
as sentries paced their beats. Here was a soldier,
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 155
unable to sleep, having a solitary smoke ; another
making a cup of coffee. In another place two were
smoking, talking over in a low tone the incidents of
the march. 'Hallo,' said one, 'what regiment?'
'Twenty-fifth Massachusetts,' I replied. 'Have a sit- midnight.
down, Sergeant,' and he pulled his blanket along
for a seat. S.oon we were gossiping away as cosy
as could be, talking over the events of the expedi-
tion, and anticipating the morrow. 'I say, Bill, haul
out those potatoes, — done ain't they?' 'Guess so/
and with his bayonet he poked half a dozen sweet
potatoes out of the hot embers. Salt was pro-
duced, and with a cup of piping hot coffee and the
omnipresent hard-tack, we had a good soldiers'
supper, eaten with soldiers' appetite. A half-hour
spent thus, and extending them an invitation to
return the visit, I bade them good night, and made
my way back. It was a calm, still night, and above
the quiet stars looked down upon this bivouac of
twenty thousand men. It was a scene never to be
forgotten."
One night we bivouacked near Wise's Forks,
filed into a field on the left of the road, stacked
arms, and went for rails for our fires. It was a hard
effort to get them, but we succeeded at last, and a
156 The Story of Company A.
cheery rail fire covered with tin cups full of coffee
was a pleasant sight for cold and tired soldiers.
While gathering leaves and hunting for rails a com-
rade discovered a dead Johnny partly covered with
leaves. Soon others were found, and Comrade
Rebels Bayers — I think it was — reported finding "some
Johnnies out in the woods all dead." . "What are
you fretting about then ? All dead you say?"
"Yes." "Then they won't trouble us before morning,
will they?" They did though, for a detail was made
to bury them, and the order had to be obeyed.
Thirteen dead Confederates were found at this place ;
the Third New York Cavalry had been through here,
and this was the result in part.
This march back to New Berne, which we reached
Sunday the 2ist, was severe. The weather was
Severe
weather, very cold, and one night the water froze in the can-
teens under our heads, as we laid with our feet to
the rail fire. We were absent from New Berne
thirteen days, and the Union loss in killed, wounded
and missing was five hundred and seventy-five men.
"On the return from Goldsboro' rations of whiskey
were served out to the men. Corporal Elwell had
on this occasion taken a large ration, and was making
considerable noise, strutting about and calling him-
2$th Regt., Mass. Vols. 157
self Provost Marshal of Plymouth. This was a hit
at Captain Parkhurst, who was Provost Marshal of
Plymouth while we were there. It made some dis-
turbance. Colonel Pickett, who was on horseback,
rode up and seeing the state of things, could hardly
keep down a laugh ; but calling Lieutenant Bessey,
said : 'Take the Corporal away, or I shall have to see
him.' Pickett possessed that happy faculty of not
seeing too much."
The new year of 1863 found us at New Berne in
old Camp Oliver, and for some weeks we had a quiet New Year
time of it. February 8th, one hundred guns were
fired from Fort Totten, it being the anniversary of
the taking of Roanoke Island.
The weather was very changeable ; warm days
and cold, often freezing, nights. This caused much
sickness. It is but justice to say that the Twenty-
fifth was the crack regiment of the Department, and
great crowds came every day to witness the dress
parade.
"One Sunday, after inspection, all the sergeants
being in their tent, Sergeant McLane said he was
going to get a pass to go down town. 'What for,
Jemsy ? Nothing going on in town to-day,' said Burr.
'Well, fellers, we have been out here a year and a
158 The Story of Company A.
half, and I have not been to church ; I feel as though
I ought to go.' 'Good, Jemsy, that's just the way
I feel,' said Sergeant Putnam. Jemsy got his pass
and departed. The day went by as Sundays always
did ; the boys amused themselves with reading,
writing, slicking up, etc., and profound quiet reigned
in Camp Oliver. After dress parade, when all the
sergeants were in their tent, Jemsy returned, his
appearance, to say the least, not indicating that he
had been to church. 'Well, Jemsy, had a good time?'
Forgotten
prayers. 'Y-o-u b-e-t I have.' 'Go to church?' asked Burr.
'Y-e-s, I did, and would you believe it, I got down
on my knees and I'll be G — d d — d to h — 1 if I could
think of a single prayer ! ' '
h > / f T/iW^u j-^J^
D E PT.
of
N ORTH CAROL I NA,
Co Bosttyx
CHAPTER IX.
EXPEDITIONS (Continued).
ON THE 4th of March Companies A and C went
on picket on the Trent road near Deep Gully,
joining the companies already there under Captain Cam.
Denny. The camp was known as Camp Pickett.
On the 6th we heard the order while on duty, "Fall
in A, fall in. The Twenty-fifth comes." Soon the
Regiment made its appearance, and we took our
place in line, and started off on another expedition.
After a march of a dozen miles towards Kinston,
passing the blockade again, we bivouacked in a
beautiful spot completely shut in by pine woods
and perfectly concealed. This was near the forks
of the Trenton and Kinston roads. Companies A, G
and K were ordered to be in readiness at midnight
to go on a scout, the object being to "gobble up"
a body of Rebel infantry on picket five or six miles
21
1 60 The Story of Company A.
from our bivouac, and to destroy their camp. At
1863.
the appointed time we left our camp with a company
of the Third New York Cavalry in advance. The
night was very dark at the start, but we pushed on
Midnight through woods, swamps and mud towards Kinston
for three or four miles, then advancing with more
caution as we drew near the picket post of the
enemy. Suddenly, crack went a rifle in advance,
the cavalry made a dash and the infantry followed
at double-quick. This was all very exciting. But
that rifle shot would alarm the next post, and we
must move on. Soon there was another shot and
another dash of the cavalry, in which they succeeded
in capturing one of the Rebel pickets ; and on we
went. A horseman was now heard approaching ;
the cavalry dismounted and quietly awaited his ad-
vance. They challenged and grappled with him ;
the struggle was fierce but short. No shots fired
this time. The horseman is captured and sent to
the rear under guard.
As we still pressed on those ahead received the
fire of some half-dozen rifles — probably a reserve
guard, or the main picket camp. The cavalry had
two wounded this time ; we had none. An open
field was on our left, woods on our right, and open
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 161
fields beyond. Ahead — perhaps a quarter of a mile
1863.
— was a dark line of woods, in which was supposed
to be the enemy's camp. Skirmishers — Company
G, Lieutenant Daly — were thrown out on the right ;
on the left a portion of Company A, Sergeant Put-
nam, while the rest of Company A under Lieutenant
Bessey, and Company K, Lieutenant Forbes, held
the center in the road. The skirmishers of Com-
pany A took their place in line in the field as quickly
as if it had been broad daylight, and we went for-
ward. A wide, deep ditch was encountered, but
with a sort of flying jump the boys managed to cross, Attack on
and we advanced again. Soon the moon came out cam*>'
from behind the clouds and we could view the whole
country in our vicinity. A volley was fired on our
right — Company G was catching it. We came to a
barn, and geese hissed at us as we passed, but not
a gun was fired. It was comical withal, the hissing
of those geese, and a low laugh ran down the skir-
mish line. We approached the woods and still not
a shot was fired. A light was seen through the
trees, and the forms of tents dimly appeared. We
had struck the Rebel camp. We entered the woods,
the left of the skirmish line swung around to the
right, and we had the camp — a dozen tents — sur-
rounded.
1 62 The Story of Company A.
Meantime the troops, with the cavalry in advance,
1863.
had charged down the road, received a volley from
the Rebels, and then driven them. Corporal Jimmy
Green ("Spud" we called him) was sent to Captain
The camp Denny, who was in command, to report that we had
captured the camp, and he ordered it burned. But
first we went through it. We found boxes unopened,
- evidently just received ; we opened them with our
bayonets and found them filled with good things
from home — apples, cake, eggs, etc. We, of course,
ate the solids, and — certainly, why not? — drank the
fluids, and then proceeded to obey orders. We
stirred up the fire, piled on everything that would
burn, and soon all was in a blaze.
Corporal Bugbee heard chickens cackle. "Kill
D , , 'em, boys," he shouted, "Damn 'em, we can eat 'em !
Bugbee s *
chickens. Wring their necks ! " Very soon there was no more
cackling of chickens. But they proved rather ex-
pensive to the Corporal, for in his haste to catch
them he kicked aside a little roll of paper which was
picked up by Comrade White, who found he had
sixty dollars in Confederate bills. These, of course,
were not passable within our lines, but White ex-
changed them with North Carolina people for their
money, which was current in New Berne, and this
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 163
he loaned about to the boys, and they, on next pay
day, returned it to him in greenbacks ! Bugbee got
the chickens but lost the money.
After the camp had been destroyed we made a
hasty march back to our bivouac in the woods,
reaching there about six o'clock on the -morning of
the yth, having marched about a dozen miles since
leaving our camp at midnight. We remained here
until the next day and then returned to Camp
Pickett.
Our boys brought away some things from the
Rebel camp, — rifles, knapsacks, and several "Yan- "Yankee
kee Slayers"* — but nothing of value. Some letters
found in the knapsacks which our boys went through,
.showed a pitiful state of things in the South at that
early stage of the war. The following are extracts
from a letter which was taken from a knapsack in
this camp, and is now in the possession of the
writer. It was written by a mother to her sons in
the Confederate army.
* These "Yankee Slayers" were huge, rough blades, one and a half feet
long, and quite heavy. They were hammered out by hand, had rude scab-
bards, and were intended to be hung on the waist-belt. One of these, taken
from the Rebel camp, is now in the museum of The Worcester Society of
Antiquity. It is, perhaps, unnecessary to say that these terrible-looking
weapons were perfectly harmless. I never knew of one of them being used,
nor did I ever hear of any person who was injured by one.
1 64 The Story of Company A.
febaray the 2d 1863
1 3' Deer Sons i seet myselfe to Drope you uns a few lins
to let you no that i reseved your kind and Welkim leter to nite
and i war Mour then gladde to her from you both these few lins
leves us all well at this time . . . i war glade to her from you
uns and sorry to her that you War on picket and had nothing to
eat i want to no Whether you got What litel i sent . . if you
Southern
, „ stay thar and if you Dont get kill ner takin prisner i will try and
git some boddy to fetch you somthing to eat time is hard her
. i have bin tring to git Wheat and corn ever sins and i
cant gite a bite at no prise corn is Worth from 2 to 3 Dolers and
cant git hit at that they War a Man at town the outher Day and
he oferd A hunderd Dolers A barle and cold not git hit at that
Meet they is ofern A Doler and fifty cents A pond and i Dont no
What the pepel Will Dow her let lone the pour Solger and hit is
harde on both sids . . .
fer What i can under stand you boys is giting [illegible] Wicked
takin up the pour yankes and taken tha clothing of and pull ther
eys opin an ther Moth and standin them up and cusen them and
i Want to no Whether hit is so or not i Dont no Whether hit is
so [or] not i hope hit aint so and i never Want to her of the
like beeing Don in ther compny A gane When i hirde hite hit
Made the hare rise one My hed how Wod i fel to her of your A
beeing kill and the yankeys servin you so ...
the young girls is Wating fer you solgers to come they say to
the olde Men When they come A bout them goe Way you is no
solges goe to the War . . .
This expedition was a bold thing to undertake,
and was well planned and well carried out. It was
only partially successful, however, for the purpose
was to capture the entire detachment, whereas we
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 165
secured only half a dozen prisoners ; but we broke
up the post and destroyed the camp.
The troops left for New Berne, Company A re-
maining at Camp Pickett. On the i3th of March
the enemy made a bold attempt to capture New
Berne. They approached the town from every
available point, driving in our pickets at Deep Gully,
and four companies, A, C, G and K, were ordered
there. This Deep Gully was a ravine extending
from the Trent river some miles towards the Neuse,
and having a deep stream of water running through
it, not easily crossed except at one place where was Attack at
a bridge and one or two fords. At the Gully was
an earth-work which protected the bridge, and one
old Quaker gun made it look quite formidable. As
the enemy approached near, Company A under
Lieutenant Bessey ; Company C, Lieutenant Davis ;
and Company G, Captain Wagely, formed in the
rear of the earthwork, Company A at the left. Soon
the enemy opened on us with grape shot, which
passed harmlessly over our heads as we lay on the
ground and crashed into the woods at our rear.
Sergeant Wesson ("Old Rats" the boys called him)
seeing a large stump directly in his Jront, ten or
twelve feet distant, crawled to it, and feeling quite
1 66 The Story of Company A.
secure behind it, looked back to us, and with a
1863.
motion of his fingers to his nose said, "Don't you
wish you were here?" In less than a minute a
solid shot struck the stump, which proved to be
rotten, and the pieces flew in every direction. Wes-
son was not injured, and a hearty laugh greeted
him as he wriggled back to his place in line.
The place got too warm for us, and we were or-
dered to fall back, which we did without harm. The
cavalry had one man killed. We formed in line of
battle with the cavalry on our left, and waited for
an attack ; hours passed with little firing and no
harm done. At the first appearance of the enemy
a messenger had been sent to New Berne for help,
A id from
New and about 6 P. M., the balance of the old Twenty -
with the Fifth and Forty-sixth Massachusetts
regiments, and part of Belger's Battery, reached us.
Our regiment was the first to arrive, and we were
glad to see our comrades, and now felt as if we
could drive the enemy, although it was reported
that they had over a dozen pieces of artillery, some
cavalry, and eight or ten regiments.
The enemy were delayed in crossing at the Gully
a little while, as our people had destroyed the bridge.
Trees had also been felled across the road which
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 167
added to the delay, but after a time they got into
position, and there was considerable firing until
dark. That night was freezing cold, and as no
fires were allowed we were in a wretched plight.
It did seem as though the cold would penetrate to
our very bones.
The next day, the i4th, we were relieved by the
Forty-third Massachusetts, and we returned to
Camp Oliver, passing on the way our picket camp,
and taking our knapsacks with us.
It seems that the attack on New Berne was a
failure in every quarter. The gunboats took a hand
in it on the Neuse river, and altogether there was The
quite a lively time. The Rebs at the Gully were
* J a failure
under command of General B. B. Hill, while Petti-
grew commanded across the Neuse river, opposite
New Berne.*
There were probably at this time in New Berne,
twenty-five thousand men, and an imposing sight Grand
was the grand review by General Foster. It was, I review.
think, the largest body of soldiers we ever had in
North Carolina.
As one hundred guns were fired on February 8th
* For a full description of this attack on New Berne, see Denny's Wearing
the BlUe.
1 68 The Story of Company A.
in honor of the Battle of Roanoke, so we were to
have a holiday on March i4th, in honor of the cap-
ture of New Berne ; but to accomodate the Rebels
in their desire to attack the place on that day, our
celebration was put off until the lyth. On the
morning of that day crowds gathered on the parade
ground to witness the sports. General Foster and
staff, also General Palmer, were present, and ap-
peared to enjoy the fun as sensible men should. A
boxing match between Captain Tom O'Neil and his
brother Jim, was one of the exercises of the day.
Sack races followed, in which Company A was repre-
sented by Comrade Sawyer, who carried away the
prize. Climbing the greased pole caused a deal of
merriment. Half a dozen men blindfolded, wheel-
ing wheelbarrows at a mark, were a comical feature
in the programme, and chasing greased pigs made
much commotion all over the camp, while other
sports occupied the time until the middle of the
afternoon, when the affair broke up, and the crowds
dispersed.
Two days after, on the iQth, tents were struck,
and the Regiment was on its way to Plymouth on
board the steamer Escort. As there was not room
for the whole regiment on the vessel Companies A,
2$th Rcgt., Mass. Vols. 169
E and H marched to the barracks used by the Forty-
fourth, and remained until the 23d, when the same
steamer took the three companies and landed them
at Plymouth on the 25th. One night, during our
stay at the barracks, we thought it would be — as
Comrade Bolster expressed it — conducive, if we could
have a dance. Leave was obtained to remain up
after taps, two fiddles were found in a neighboring
regiment, candles procured and the old barracks Our
lighted up, and at it the boys went. But to dance
without ladies was a difficulty not reckoned on, and
it was, I think, the genius of Private Bolster that
overcame it. "Take your caps, fellers ; visors to
the front, men ; visors to the rear, women." Tis
done, and funny enough, all visors are to the rear!
All want to be women. This was soon arranged
and the fun began. Mr. (Capt.) Thomas O'Neil
and Miss (Lieut.) Daly were the stars of the eve-
ning, keeping the crowd in a roar of laughter. For
two hours the frolic went on, when orders came
"Lights out," and the day ended. This is a trifling
incident to note, but there are many such trifling
incidents in the every-day life of the soldier. Even
in war time, soldiers are not always fighting, nor
always on the march ; but soldiers are always busy,
1 70 The Story of Company A.
and if duty does not call them, fun comes to the
863' front.
A transport ship with six or eight hundred men
on board is not the most comfortable place in the
Shipdis- world, one great trouble being the lack, of facilities
comforts. fQf cookjng for tne multitude. Any soldier will
appreciate the situation. The ordinary ship cooking
apparatus is at best limited in its capacity, and of no
great account with such a crowd. Now the steamer
Escort was provided with huge boilers in which
could be cooked a barrel of beef and a barrel of
coffee at the same time ; this to us was a g-odsend
o
and of the greatest benefit to the soldiers.
Since our last visit to Plymouth the town had
changed for the worse. It had been occupied by
Effects both Union and Confederate troops, and a few weeks
before was set on fire by the enemy, and the business
portion in the center of the town entirely destroyed. •
Several large private houses, with elm trees in front,
from whose branches hung in long festoons the "Ivy
green," were also consumed. But this is war. Our
camp was pitched in the burnt district, and in honor
of the commander of the gunboat Commodore Perry,
was named Camp Flusser, Colonel Pickett taking
command of the post, and Lieutenant - Colonel
Moulton, of the Twenty-fifth Regiment.
2 $th Regt., Mass. Vols. 171
On our arrival at Plymouth Companies A, G and
O£
K were highly complimented for their conduct at
the Gully on the i3th, and they deserved it. The piymouth
troops went to work at once on the fortifications asain-
just laid out for the defence of the town. A heavy Fortifi-
detail was made from each company to work on the
fort, besides the regular camp and picket duty ; and
the pioneers went out daily to clear away the forest
and get a good range for the guns. The pioneers
often cut down trees four feet through, straight as
arrows, and more than one hundred feet high.
Refugees kept coming down the river, some from
a distance of fifty miles, in their dugouts. Some of
Refugees.
these boats were quite large ; one, 1 remember, con-
tained three men, three women and six children,
with all their household effects. Most of these
people were going to New Berne, having been
driven from their homes on account of their Union
sentiments.
As early as the middle of February we had found Wiid
wild flowers in bloom in New Berne — violets, myrtle, fl°wers-
trailing arbutus and others ; and here, at Plymouth,
they were very abundant.
We had now been over five months without pay,
and there was considerable growling; but unless to
172 TJie Story of Company A.
send it home, which many of us did, it was not of
much account, really, for a soldier actually needs
little money for himself; still it was "convenient to
have in the house," and we were paid shortly after,
which made the boys happy for a while.
Our Camp Flusser was neatly laid out, and the
Camp company tents were very comfortable. From the
™r' burnt district we got boards for floors, raised our
Sibley tents about three feet, putting a sort of cur-
tain of canvas around at the bottom ; this made the
tents more roomy and very pleasant. But this was
not all. We stole, or rather, found, doors, which
with a little rough carpenter work we put in place
in our tents. These doors had knobs, and the whole
thing worked admirably. We did not get any door-
NO door- belis for our tents, as it was thought we could get
bells.
along without them ; but think of it — soldiers with-
out door-bells to their tents !
We picked up while at Plymouth, as soldiers will,
Pets, many pets — a curious lot — squirrels, owls, raccoons,
birds, and little darkies, the latter quite useful in
blacking shoes and such odd jobs. The habit of
dipping snuff in the South has been spoken of.
One day a little white girl passed by the camp, and
a soldier, observing a stick protruding from her
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 173
mouth, asked, "What have you in your mouth little
1863.
girl?" "My snuff stick," was the reply. "What, A
do you chew tobacco P'^ "Oh, no; I dont chew, I youthful
T " . TT 11 ->» ..T> " ^.U "dipper."
dip. "How old are you r 1 m seven, was the
reply. What a sight was that.
An effort was made while at Plymouth to get up
another dance, and in looking about for a place a
little brick church was selected. In the first place
it was quite central, and then it was large enough ;
so the church door was opened — whether with or
without a key I do not remember — space was cleared
of seats on the floor, candles obtained, fiddlers found,
and all promised well. Meantime a little incident
was transpiring not calculated on by the getters-up
of the scheme. A squad of soldiers had discovered
at no great distance from our camp, a small house,
in which was found that cheerful-looking carriage,
the village hearse. This was run out of the build- with the
ing ; it had a covered top and open sides, and a
singular idea popped into the head of one of our
boys. "I say fellers, suppose we run this team
around town and pick up the boys and take them
to the dance." There were no horses, so two or
three soldiers got hold of each thill, and "she is all
right," One mounts to the driver's seat, and one
1 74 The Story of Company A.
crawls inside, smoking his pipe, saying, "I'll be the
first passenger." It was comical enough — a soldier
stretched at full length, and smoke rolling out in
puffs from the inside of that dismal-looking vehicle,
all ready for a start. But suddenly a soldier puts
in an appearance with "Look out boys, Colonel
Pickett has ordered the arrest of every man en-
gaged in this church dance business. Take care
of yourselves" ; and he took care of himself by dis-
appearing around the corner. What a change was
there. The driver got down from his seat, and the
passenger slid out, making, as one expressed it,
quicker time than was usual with passengers in that
after carriage> ^e hearse was taken back into the house,
the boys, doors shut with a hurried slam, and the boys dis-
appeared to take care of themselves. It proved as
was said, that Pickett had ordered the arrest of all
concerned. The lights were put out and the church
closed ; quite a number of the men were arrested,
and — Plymouth was saved. The upshot of the
matter was a severe reprimand to those in custody
— and that was enough. The affair made some
talk for a day or two, and Comrade Bolster pro-
posed that, as there had been so much fuss about
it, we should pick up the little d — d church, and
25th Reg t., Mass. Vols. 175
send it home as a momentum of the occasion. This
expression brought down the house — Bolster gen-
erally did. when he spoke.
We found in Plymouth hand cards made at Leices-
ter, Massachusetts, by Whittemore ; and it is a little
singular that they were found by Leicester boys.
While we were at Plymouth, Washington, North
Carolina, was surrounded by the Rebels, who laid
siege to the place with twelve thousand men. Gen-
eral Foster was there with only twelve hundred men, Slege °f
Wash-
but he held the place. A steamer with ammunition ington.
and a few troops run the blockade, and relieved the
hard-worked garrison ; and General Foster run the
gauntlet one night on the steamer Escort, with the
loss of one or two men, and reached New Berne in
safety, intending to return at once and relieve the
place. This was not necessary, however, for the
enemy had got enough of it, and one night raised
the siege and vanished, leaving Washington and
the Tar river free. This defence of Washington,
though little talked about and little known, was
a brilliant affair, and reflected great credit upon
General Foster, and spoke well for the pluck and
endurance of the men under his command.
1 76 rfke Story of Company A.
On the 3d of May we were relieved by Wessel's
1863.
Brigade, and at seven p. M., left Plymouth on the
steamer Thomas Collyer, Commander Flusser and
his sailors giving us a display of fireworks with
hearty cheers as we left the old town. We reached
New Berne on the afternoon of the 4th, after a de-
lightful sail ; and on the 5th of May had our tents
pitched once more in old Camp Oliver.
As at Roanoke Island the boys had the fever for
making briar wood pipes, so at New Berne the rage
for bone-work prevailed to an alarming extent during
the remainder of our stay at Camp Oliver. Comrade
Bone
carving. Henry Goulding was the most expert at this busi-
ness, and turned out some really very fine work in
the shape of rings, crosses, scarf-pins, etc., all beauti-
fully carved. This fever for bone cutting pervaded
the whole Regiment, and it served to while away
many an hour of dull camp life.
We had now been in the service of Uncle Sam
, over a year and a half, and in accordance with orders
Furloughs J
received, we were having furloughs of thirty days
granted us, a certain number from each company of
the Regiment going, and on their return another
lot departing, and so on. This was very pleasant,
and was encouraging to the soldiers. Every man
2 5th Regt., Mass. Vols. 177
who returned from furlough would be surrounded
by a crowd of soldiers eager to catch every word he
uttered as he told the story of what he had seen at
home.
At midnight of May 2ist we were on the march Another
again, this time in the direction of Bachellor's Creek. march-
We had been on the road about two hours, and the
men were plodding along tired and sleepy, when an
unusual noise was heard at the head of the column,
and the men of the companies before us dropped
out to the right and left of the road as though a
squad of cavalry was charging down the line. Com-
pany A did the same and those in our rear followed
suit ; and in a moment, as it were, the road was
clear of soldiers ; scarcely one man could be seen
standing in it. In their precipitation the men fell
helter-skelter over one another, and as they picked
themselves up and got back to their places in the
road again, the question was asked by every one: what
"What was that?" and the answer, "What was it ?" was it?
Some declared they saw the form of a horse pass
like a flash down the center of the road ; others
thought it was a deer that had got frightened and
dashed into the line ; and others saw nothing, but
all gpt out of the way. The question "What was
178 The Story of Company A.
it?" has never been satisfactorily answered. After
the march was resumed, the men talked the affair
over, and all declared they would not get out of the
way again if the devil himself should come.
We had not been half an hour on the road, and the
men were getting drowsy again, when a noise simi-
lar to the first reached our ears from somewhere in
advance, and a few soldiers were dropping out of
Another the road again from the companies ahead, and about
scare. as quickly as before. But Company A must have
the credit of remaining in line this time. "We
brought our rifles to the 'Charge bayonets' and
waited for — nothing." It was really nothing this
time, and the affair created a great deal of mirth as
we proceeded on our way.
At early daylight we came to a halt near the rail-
road leading to Goldsboro'. In the middle of the
afternoon we got on board a train of cars and moved
some five or six miles towards Goldsboro', and
joining the Fifth and Twenty-seventh Massachusetts
Regiments, marched to Core Creek and bivouacked
till midnight. The march was then resumed, the
Twenty-fifth having the advance after crossing Core
Creek. Company K, Captain Denny, was thrown
out as advance guard, and we moved on quickly
2$th Regt., Mass. Vols, 179
but quietly, with no signs of an enemy until about
4 A. M., when the advance run on to the Rebel
pickets and drove them in. The Regiment now
filed into a field on the right, and formed in line of
battle. Companies K (Captain Denny) and E
(Captain O'Neil) were sent out as skirmishers, and
soon discovered a long line of earthworks, and both
parties commenced firing. This continued two hours
or more, when we heard loud cheering and volleys ^nsagf-
. mentwith
ot musketry in the enemy s rear, and we knew ourfAeenem
boys, under Colonel Jones, of the Fifty-eighth Penn-
sylvania, were charging. Company A, Captain
Goodwin, was now sent to join the skirmish line,
which was advancing at double-quick ; the line of
defence was soon reached, and Company A swarmed Co. A
over the earthworks like bees ; and being" attacked ^rst in
the earth-
both in front and in the rear, the Johnnies were at works.
a disadvantage. They scattered in every direction ;
we took one hundred and sixty-five prisoners, and
proceeded to destroy the works as best we could.
We held the position, which was a strong one, until
5 P. M., when the object of the expedition being
accomplished, and as the enemy, having been
strongly re-enforced, were coming down the rail-
road, we commenced a retreat to Core Creek.
1 80 The Story of Company A.
The Twenty-fifth Regiment, with a company of
cavalry, and one piece of artillery, acted as rear
guard, the enemy following close on our heels, shell-
ing us but doing no harm. We reached Core Creek
The
retreat, about io P. M., and bivouacked for the night. On
the 23d we moved early in the direction of the rail-
road, intending to take the train at Bachellor's Creek ;
but a heavy force of the enemy was found posted
on the railroad in our front, at the point where the
road we were traveling crossed it, and we were fired
upon from our right, and in our rear they were close
upon us. We were getting into a bad place, but
our artillery with some trouble dispersed our op-
posers, and we passed on. The enemy were, no
doubt, trying to cut us off; to avoid this we made
quite a detour through what is, properly speaking,
Dover Swamp, but was then called "Gum Swamp";
and by this name it will be always known to the
members of the Twenty-fifth Regiment. On leaving
the road we plunged at once into this swamp. It
'" was more than knee-deep with mud and water, its
Swamp.
bushes and brambles were interlaced with vines,
and it was with the greatest difficulty that we could
cut our way along. As hour after hour passed it
seemed as if there was no end to it. Not a breath
2$th Regt., Mass. Vols. 181
of air was stirring- and the sun poured down an
1863.
intense heat upon us. The boys began to give out.
The great cry was : "Water, water." We tried to
strain the swamp water through our handkerchiefs,
but it was horrible and we could not drink it. Faint-
ing, panting for breath, struggling along, men
dropped down where they stood, and it seemed
impossible to get them any further. And yet, there
was a sort of grim humor through it all ; the old
jokes would occasionally come to the surface : "Why in Gum
did we go for sogers," said one. "Give it up," was Swamt-
the reply. "Because we were foolish cusses," said
another. But no song enlivened this dreadful march
through Gum Swamp ; it took all the strength, all
the pluck the men possessed to stagger along and
keep their failing spirits up. Comrade Forbes, who
had been detailed for hospital service, and had done
little or no duty with the Company, was with us in
the swamp, with a large box of medicines, etc., on
his back. Doctor Rice, the Regimental Surgeon,
was also here ; and, of course, all were on foot, and
one man was as good as another. "I say, Forbes,
you don't carry a rifle, but you have to carry the
Doctor's pill box." "Yes, and I'd tote it to hell if
only Old Rice had to go 'long afoot ! " "Billy," said
1 82 The Story of Company A,
another (to Billy Lyon), "don't you wish you was
home?" "Bah! home is a fool to this place."
But all this ceased after a while, and no sound
was heard save the splashing of the mud and water
as we pushed slowly on. After some four hours of
this dreadful marching, the cry ran along the line :
"The railroad ! the railroad ! " This was good news,
indeed, and with desperate efforts we struggled on,
Through and were soon at the railroad, where we scrambled
the swamp Qn to ^e freight cars awaiting us, and like starving
men ate the rations that were soon brought. We
reached New Berne at 5 P. M., Saturday, May 23d,
and were at home in Camp Oliver.
We marched thirty miles on this expedition.
Several men had to be brought out of the swamp
on stretchers, and it was said that two or three died
before they could be got out. At dark of this day
the Rebs, who had followed us, attacked our force
at Bachellor's Creek. This post was gallantly de-
fended, but Colonel Jones — he who was in command
on this expedition — was shot dead.
In June of 1863 the troops were employed in
building fortifications, and as the thermometer would
often show over one hundred in the shade, work
ceased during the hottest part of the day. This labor
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 183
in such extremely hot weather was very trying to
the men, and the sick list was soon doubled. The
daily drills were kept up, and the Twenty-fifth was
never allowed to play second fiddle in that respect.
On the 4th of July the Company was ordered to
the breastworks near Fort Totten. A cavalry ex-
pedition had started from New Berne, and the
infantry were to stay in the fortifications until it
returned, which it did on the /th, and the Company
marched back to Camp Oliver. On the i/th of
July the Company went on another expedition. On the
Crossing the Neuse river and landing at Fort An-
derson, we marched at once into the country. The
weather was intensely hot and the roads heavy with
sand, making the marching very hard. We halted
at an old, weather-beaten church, and from its pul-
pit Comrade Daniel T. Eaton gave us a spicy tem-
perance lecture. Meantime the cavalry passed us
on a raid towards Tarboro'. They had with them
very inoffensive looking machines with which to
destroy railroads. They could with ease, they said,
turn a red-hot rail into a cork-screw with them.
Beyond some sharp skirmishing with the enemy
nothing was done by the infantry. On our return
. 24
184 The Story of Company A.
march water gave out. Our canteens were squeezed
dry, and with parched lips and swollen tongues,
we dragged along to Fort Anderson ; but before
we reached it many fell down into the hot sand
from sheer exhaustion as we marched, and with
difficulty were made to move on. As we approached
A hard tne fort the boys there saw us and took in the sit-
march. uation at a glance. They had pails of water ready
for us, into which we thrust our faces as dogs do
into a running stream. The Nectar of the Gods
was — cold water ! After a short rest at the fort we
recrossed the Neuse and were home again, July 20.
Distance marched, thirty miles.
After a few days' rest (camp duties performed
and drill kept up), on July 25th we were once more
away, four companies, A, E, G and H going on
board the steamer Rucker, and landing Sunday, P. M.,
at Winton, on the Chowan river. We bivouacked
on the banks of the stream, and shortly after the
cavalry arrived and started off on an expedition to
Scouting. \Veldon. The next day Companies A and E under
Captain Tom O'Neil, started off on a scout to Cole-
raine, and succeeded in capturing forty horses, ten
bales of cotton, six hundred pounds of tobacco, and
any number of mules and carriages, while negroes
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 185
by hundreds followed us on our return march to
1863.
Winton, with little bundles tied up and swung on
sticks over their shoulders, shouting "We's gwine
to liberty, hi-yah, gwine to liberty ! " The negroes
would stop work in the fields, gaze at the Yankee
column a few minutes, drop hoe or axe, and fling
up their old hats and shout "Gwine to liberty!"
" Gwine
Their day had come at last. At some plantations to liberty"
the mistress of the house would try to stop the slaves
from leaving, but it was of no use. "Missis, we's
agwine to liberty." On all the plantations no white
men were visible — the darkies said "all in de Rebel
army." A motley procession it was as we reached
our bivouac at Winton. We had been thirty-five
hours absent, and had marched thirty miles in twenty-
four hours, actual marching time.
The next day, Companies G and H, under Captain
Harrington, started on a similar scout. They were
gone twenty-four hours, and brought in twelve bales
of cotton, twenty horses and mules with harnesses,
etc., and a large quantity of tobacco. July 3ist we
went on board transports again, and reached New
Berne on the ist of August.
The month of August proved a sickly one for the
Company. At times over twenty men would as-
1 86 The Story of Company A.
semble at surgeon's call, and on one occasion at
roll call, only sixteen men answered to their names
for duty. At one time Companies A and E were
in Camp Oliver alone, part of the Regiment being in
Washington, N. C., some on picket, some in hos-
pitals and some on furlough. Early in September the
Company was put on picket again at the Red House.
This old place looked like many a New England
Red farm-house. Surrounded by woods, and with white
House, tents on each side, it formed a pretty picture. We
had for neighbors the One-hundred-and-thirty-first
New York. This regiment had one company of
(said to be) half-breed Indians ; they proved to be
good scouts but poor soldiers. Among the pets at
this camp was a huge brown bear.
One Sunday it was announced that our Parson
would pay us a visit with his lady Sunday school
teachers ; and it was expected that we would be in
The condition to receive them. Everything was put in
arj°" order, quarters nicely cleaned up, and the men
teachers, looked very neat and trim. Corporal Bugbee, acting
as provost, whose duty it was to keep the grounds
clean, was attending to this as the wagon containing
the delegation hove in sight, and he drew off his
men, intending to complete the job later, while the
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 187
vehicle came up, and its precious freight entered
1863.
the Red House. Hours passed ; the soldiers waited
patiently in their quarters, but no visitors appeared.
Meanwhile a merry time they had in the house —
judging from the peals of laughter frequently heard.
"Guess they're praying, ain't they?" said one. "I
reckon," said another. Corporal Bugbee in the
afternoon started again to finish his work of clean-
ing up the grounds, and was busy with three or four
men when the wagon was brought up to take the
party back to New Berne. As the ladies stepped into incident
the wagon one exclaimed, "Why, we have forgotten "/ the
the tracts !" "So we have," said another; and a
bundle of tracts was thrown out on the ground
"without note or comment." Corporal Bugbee
quietly called one of his men, and said, pointing to
the bundle, "Remove that to the rubbish heap ! "
The soldier with his shovel scooped up the sanctified
package, and "without note or comment," tossed it
on to the dirt heap. The ladies looked at one an-
other with astonishment depicted upon their fine
faces, and drove off amid such exclamations as
"Did you ever," etc. We never saw our Parson or
his teachers at any of our picket camps again. The
men who witnessed this little incident enjoyed it
1 88 The Story of Company A.
much ; and by the twinkle of his eye it was plain to
see that the Corporal appreciated the humor of the
act.
While on duty at the Red House we had abund-
ance of fruit, especially grapes. Just outside or
beyond our outpost, at what was called the Shute
place, was a grape-vine, on which hung — so the
boys reported — bushels of excellent grapes ; and
judging from the grapes brought to camp from this
vine, they were correct. So one morning the new
picket guard going to relieve those on duty, took
for each man two extra haversacks, and on reaching
Fine
fruit, the outpost a squad was made up to visit the Shute
place. The plantation was deserted and the house
had been destroyed, but the grape-vine was there ;
and we saw at once that the stories told by the boys
had not been exaggerated. The vine was of enor-
mous size, growing over a trellis six or eight feet
from the ground, and covered a space — to guess at
it — of ten to fifteen feet wide and fifty or sixty feet
long. It was loaded down with the finest Scupper-
nongs. We posted our guard, and in a very short
time had every haversack full besides our jackets,
and jogged back towards our camp at the Red
House. It was said that over forty bushels of grapes
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 189
had been picked from this vine in one season. The
1863.
darkies told us : " Better not eat dose grapes. Gib
you de chills." " Bah ! " said a soldier, "we'll eat the
grapes and d — n the chills!" We did eat them,
and we thought them healthy. The grapes actually
seemed to cure those who had the chills.
The people in New Berne said they tried to avoid
the early morning air on account of the chills ; also Chilh
the heat of the day and the night air, for the same
reason. It may be that they were right, but we
soldiers had to take it all in. Morning or night air
or heat of the day — it was all the same to us ; and
though nearly all of us had chills, yet we surely did
not have them worse or more frequently than the
residents of New Berne.
On one of the plantations in this neighborhood
we found a girl fifteen years old, who said she had
never been to New Berne, only eleven miles distant,
and was hardly ever off the old plantation, yet was
never lonesome. Talk about a quiet life !
Life on picket at the Red House passed rapidly
away. We were not often disturbed while there, Dr Kice
though on October 22d, Dr. Rice and his orderly, captured.
Private Savage of Company A, were captured while
riding from Red House to another picket camp in
1 90 The Story of Company A.
broad daylight. Dr. Rice was exchanged the next'
1863.
month, but Savage died a prisoner at Richmond.
One night we were turned out twice by shots fired
in the woods near by, but we had no serious trouble
while here. We had now been two years in the
service of the United States.
The month previous (September) Colonel Pickett
assumed command of the sub-district of the Pamlico,
from which he was relieved the following December.
On the night of the 24th of October, about 9
o'clock, we left the Red House in heavy marching
order, and proceeded to New Berne, about eleven
Night ...
march, miles. By some mistake, it was said, wagons went
to New Berne nearly empty, while the soldiers
marched heavily loaded over the same road. We
reached New Berne at 3 A. M. of the 25th, and se-
cured a couple of hours' sleep in and around our old
cook house, the only building on the ground besides
the guard house. The old camp ground looked
deserted and dreary enough, not a tent standing
where so many had stood in months past ; and the
place that had been our home so long was desolate
indeed, At 5 P. M. of the same day we got on board
a train of freight cars, and started for Beaufort,
bidding good-bye forever to old Camp Oliver.
2 '$th Regt., Mass. Vols. 191
Camp Oliver had been in existence about sixteen
months, and during a great portion of this time it
had been occupied by some part of the Twenty-fifth
Regiment ; and the boys had come to speak of it as
home.
It commenced to rain soon after leaving New
Berne, and the train sped on through the mist and
darkness, the boys feeling sober and wondering
what would come next. Reaching Beaufort (or
rather, Morehead City) we went on board our old
steamboat, the S. R. Spaulding, which was crowded
to its utmost. We made an attempt to put to sea,
but were unable to get around Cape Lookout on
account of heavy weather ; so we anchored under
the lee of the Cape, close to the lighthouse, for the
night. Next morning (October 2;th) we succeeded
in doubling the Cape, and pushed on around Cape
Hatteras (the fourth time for many of us) with fort-
unately a comparatively calm sea ; and still on be-
tween Capes Charles and Henry, entering Chesa-
peake Bay. We went past Fortress Monroe where
our fleet had its rendezvous when we started on the
Burnside expedition, nearly two years before ; and at
length reached Newport News at the mouth of the
James river ; and on the 2d of November Camp
25
1 92 The Story of Company A.
Upton was formed, named after our old Colonel.
At this camp Dr. Rice returned to the Regiment,
having been exchanged.
When we first landed at Newport News we had
shelter tents given out to us. These were strips of
light canvas five or six feet square, with buttons and
button-holes around the edges. Two of these but-
toned, together and drawn over a support something
like an A tent, formed a shelter under which two
men could crawl like dogs, their rubber blankets
keeping them from the ground. A tents were given
Camp us later, and the place began to look more like a
Upton.
camp. As in New Berne we had raised the Sibley
tents and added a curtain of canvas, so here we
built a kind of stockade of pine slats — a narrow,
rough sort of clapboard, six to eight inches wide
and four feet long — and mounted the A tent on top.
This made a roomy place, but we had to stop the
cracks with mud "to keep the wind away." These slats
were cut from pine logs by the darkies, who charged
us one dollar per hundred for those four feet long and
a dollar and a quarter for the six feet lengths. We
had boys detailed to cut these slats, and after a little
practice some cut them as readily as the darkies.
In the early part of December Colonel Pickett
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 193
returned to the Regiment and assumed command.
1863.
While here at Newport News we had stoves in-
troduced into some of the tents. They were tunnel-
shaped, made of sheet iron, and had no bottom ; and
were placed on the ground, the pipe going up
through the top of the tent. They worked very
well. In the Sergeants' tent we had a little coal
stove that had followed us from North Carolina ; and
Sergeant Wesson ("Rats") had found some hard
coal in an old cellar-hole where a building had been
burnt close by, 'so with a coal fire we were kept very
comfortable. At first it would smoke in spite of all
we could do. Wesson tried everything he could
think of to stop it, but to no purpose. We cut off A smoky
an old boot leg and fitted it on to the top of the stove-
pipe ; that worked well for a while, but the heat
destroyed it. It was evident our pipe was not long
enough — "That's what's the matter." We went
outside to reconnoiter. Our neighbors' (next com-
pany's) tent backed up to ours. Their stove did not
smoke and their pipe was one section higher than
ours. Rats put his fore finger to his nose and looked
very wise, got a cracker box, placed it close to our
neighbors' tent, mounted it, and with leather gloves
quietly and quickly removed the upper section from
194 The Story of Company A.
their pipe and placed it on our own. We retired to
our tent and seated ourselves on our bunks to "wait
the turn of events." Presently from our neighbors'
tent: "Hallo, Company A Sergeants; how does
your stove work ?" "First-rate, real comfortable;
how does yours go ?" "It smokes like thunder!"
They went out of their tent and we heard them
Rats' discussing the state of affairs ; we slipped out and
practical }jstenecj to their story, and when it was told Rats
joke.
quietly remarked, "Your pipe ain't long enough,
that's what's the matter." "I vow, I thought our
pipe was longer than that." "It looks short com-
pared with ours," said Wesson, "you get another
length of pipe and you'll be all right." We retired
to our tent again, and soon we hear from the other :
"Well, I don't understand this." "I do," said Rats
in a low tone ; and he evidently did. Our stove
did not smoke any more but — Rats did.
One day a comrade reported : "Sergeant, I've
found a lot of bricks out here in the weeds (which
were quite high all around the camp); detail a
squad of men to go and get 'em, and we'll have
Our oven. an oven and baked beans tomorrow morning." The
detail was made ; and soon eight or ten Company A
boys were seen coming through the weeds, each
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 195
loaded down with bricks ; and in a short time an
T Rfio
oven was built, and we did have baked beans for
breakfast the next morning, to the astonishment of
our neighbors, who said, "That's it ; Company A
always has the best of everything." Very true ; we
did, but we got it ourselves.
In plain sight at low tide, and but a few rods from
shore, were the wrecks of the frigates Congress Wrecks.
and Cumberland sunk by the Rebel ram Merrimack;
also the two-turreted monitor Roanoke, and later
the captured Rebel ironclad Atlanta.
At a review early in December General Foster
bade his old soldiers farewell, in consequence of his
transfer to another department ; and Maior-General
Gen. B.F.
Benjamin F. Butler assumed command. General Butler.
Heckman, formerly Colonel of the Ninth New Jer-
sey, took command of our brigade, which was known
as "Heckman's Flying Brigade," sometimes spoken
of as the "Red Star Brigade," from the flag at head-
quarters. It was a severe blow to the old North
Carolina soldiers to lose General Foster, but he had
the good wishes of every man of his old command.
While at this camp sickness thinned our ranks to a
great extent, and Company A on occasions turned
out but twenty-three men for duty.
CHAPTER X.
CAMP, MARCH, AND BIVOUAC.
HAVE now followed Company A from the
muster-in at Camp Lincoln to Camp Upton in
Virginia. We have seen the Company in camp,
in battle, on the march, and in bivouac ; we have
seen how the men behaved under the most trying
circumstances. Let us now leave them for a while
in comfortable quarters at Camp Upton, and look a
little closer into the daily life of the soldier in active
Ignorance . 111 r •
of soldier service- Lvery veteran has had, scores ot times,
life- questions asked him which show little knowledge
of soldier life on the part of the inquirer, and which
seem to one familiar with it hardly worth answering;
but comrades must remember that our children, as
well as the great mass of the people, know as little
of these things as we ourselves did at the start ; and
it may be well to satisfy their inquiries, often ex-
2$th Regt., Mass. Vols. 197
pressed, as, How do soldiers prepare for an expedi-
tion ? How do they march, sleep and eat, build
fires in stormy weather? etc. In attempting to an-
swer, the simplest way, perhaps, will be to describe
soldier life in camp and bivouac, and on a march.
f
When we speak of a camp, the idea suggests
itself at once of a soldier's home, to a certain extent
permanent ; while bivouac is at the most but a tem-
porary halt or rest. In camp we expect to find
comfortable tents pitched in regular order, company
streets formed, good quarters for cook houses,
grounds in perfect order for parades and the like ;
Camp vs.
while in bivouac no tents are pitched, and none are bivouac.
carried on marches in war time. In active service
on a march there is no time to fool away pitching
tents, and we expect, at most, only a few hours'
rest. It may be — and usually is — for the night, but
all are ready to move at a minute's notice. In camp
the soldier gradually gathers all sorts of conven-
iences around him ; in his tent we often find board
floors, stools and benches made of cracker boxes,
and very comfortable bunks to sleep in. In bivouac
all these are done away with ; the soldier sleeps on
the ground rolled in his blanket, as best he can.
He cooks his coffee in bivouac — every man for him-
1 98 The Story of Company A.
self — while in camp the company cooks attend to
all that.
In a wet, swampy country bivouacking is wretched
business ; but on any dry ground it is certainly su-
perior to tenting, and is the healthier of the two.
The A tents, which held six men with all their
equipments, were close, stifling things at best ; the
Sibley tents were much superior, being higher and
more airy.
In starting from camp on a march — say at 4 A. M.
— the company cooks are ordered in advance to have
Prepara- , -11
tionsfor rations ready at the proper time ; and they are ready,
a march, even if it takes all night to do it. The men are
roused, and go to the cook house to draw their
rations of cooked meat, hard bread, ground coffee,
and sugar — perhaps three days' allowance ; and (a
very important item) the canteen is filled with cold
water. The soldiers don their equipments, form in
the company street in two ranks, and count off so
that each man will know his place in marching by
the flank in fours. The company is then marched
to the parade ground, where the regimental line is
formed. In leaving the camp it is by the flank in
fours. No music accompanies the soldiers on these
marches, so no attempt is made at keeping step ;
2$th Regt., Mass. Vols. 199
but the order "Route step" is given, and the men
"go as you please," the fours simply keeping to-
gether and marching abreast. The order "Arms at
will" follows, and the men carry their rifles in the Thewa
most comfortable way, at "right shoulder shift" gen- they
erally ; and go jogging along, talking, laughing,
telling stories, etc. At the proper time the order
"Halt" is heard, and every man is in his place with
rifle to the shoulder ; "Front," and like a machine
the men face to the front, and the regimental line is
formed, every man in the same position he was
when he started. At a halt every soldier looks out
for his own rifle and never loses sight of it ; it must
be within reach at any time and all the time ; but at
a bivouac for the night, when safe to do so, guards
are posted and the guns are stacked. The men go
for water and wood — rails, usually ; fires are quickly
built, and as quickly covered with tin cups filled
with water from the "old canteen" if it contains any,
if not, a search is made for some.
The boys are about making coffee. Shall we see
how they do it ? Fire of fence rails to start with —
fence rails make the best possible fire for cooking
coffee at a bivouac. Now the tin cup, holding a
quart, filled with water, is placed on the fire. Now
26
2OO The Story of Company A.
two or more heaping table-spoonfuls of ground
coffee is added (Uncle Sam used to give his boys
excellent coffee in the army). Stir gently and watch
carefully. See the rich golden color as you keep
stirring. Watch the bubbles as they appear and
disappear on the surface of this amber-colored sea.
Now gently put in sugar as you may desire. Still
stirring it begins to boil. Saints and Ministers of
Grace ! What an aroma is that which greets our
expectant nostrils. Odors from Araby the blest —
incense to the gods ! Steady now — it must not boil
C off€€
making to° long- Insert your bayonet into the hole in the
handle of your cup — a hole you punched there for
this very purpose — and lift it with its fragrant,
steaming contents from the fire. Now from the
old canteen throw in a dash of cold water to settle
it, and — it is done. Now for the haversack. Salt
horse and hard-tack — usually with something bet-
ter;* it depends somewhat on the country we have
been traveling through — and with a soldier's staving
appetite, what a supper is that ! Is it the coffee, or
appetite, or both?
* Sometimes a few onions or a bit of cabbage have been carried for miles
in the haversack, and now they work in first-rate. There is a place to eat
onions and cabbage — around the bivouac fire.
2$th Regt., Mass. Vols. 201
Sometimes a soldier will accidentally hit a rail
with his foot, shaking the contents of all the tin
cups. What a rumpus follows. "Get out of that" A ,pus
says one. "Can't you pick up your cracker boxes
(brogans) easier than that ? " says the second.
"Look at the cuss, trying to run his gunboats (bro-
gans again) around the camp fire." A shower of
such talk greets the ears of the unlucky offender,
who for a while keeps quiet, to say the least.
Now it is time to turn in and get some sleep if
possible. Let us step out from the glare of the fire-
light into the darkness, and look at the scene before
us. How strongly the features of the men are
brought out by the light of the blazing fire. What
healthy brown faces they are. In paintings we A look
have such scenes as this, but this is the living pic- at thl
ture. The fires are burning low, but here and there
the smoke is still curling gracefully up in the cool
night air ; and now, as some one stirs up the smolder-
ing embers and puts on fresh rails, a shower of
sparks, like golden bees, floats quietly away as the
spray of a fountain in the sunlight. Here is a sol-
dier by himself smoking his pipe, and no doubt
thinking of home ; there are two fellows — chums —
curled up together spoon- fashion, with their feet to
202 The Story of Company A.
the fire, capes of their overcoats drawn over their
heads, sleeping as quietly as kittens ; others are
talking in a low tone of a face they miss to-night —
a face they will never see more around the bivouac
fire. They gradually become silent, and roll them-
selves in their blankets and overcoats, and sleep.
Thus the men disappear, the fires are left to burn
themselves out, and silence reigns over the sleeping
bivouac.
Some sleep on their backs ; others sleep on their
sides, using cartridge box for pillow ; others roll up,
sl three or four together, the last man in tucks up the
rest and then wriggles his way into the middle ; and
all have their rubber blankets to lay on the ground.
The old soldier, if left to himself, selects at once
the best place to spread his blanket, his first point
being protection from rain and wind ; and a rubber
blanket is admirably adapted for the purpose — all
sorts of shelters can be made with it. I do not see
how the soldiers could have got along without their
"gum blankets," as the Johnnies called them.
In seeking shelter from the wind your old soldier
would not select a place under a tree. It is a, mis-
take often made by the inexperienced soldier to
choose a spot to spread his blanket under some
Shelter at
25th Regt., Mass. Vols.
large tree, with dense foliage above but no pro-
tection from the wind below ; and this protection
from the wind that blows is what he wants. The
veteran finds some thick low bushes through which
the wind cannot easily penetrate, or rigs up his
rubber blanket in some sheltered spot, so that
it will serve as a screen or shield. The tree
would give him a sort of roof, which is not needed
in a clear, windy night. A man sleeping on the
ground lies pretty flat and takes up little room, so
that any thick shelter that is knee-high is shield
enough from any wind that blows, provided the wind
cannot blow through it. I have made a good shel-
ter by cutting down bushes and sticking them in
the ground thickly together. We used to think
when lying on the ground with the enemy's shot
and shell flying over us, that we could lie as thin as
a plank ; some thought as thin as a board ; while
Comrade Bolster declared that he could lay as thin
as a shingle ; but when the bullets pierced the very
caps on our heads, taking a lock of hair by which to
be remembered, we wished we could lie flatter than
that.
If it be a rainy night it is the roof over his head
the. soldier wants ; and here, again, the rubber
204 The Story of Company A.
blanket comes in play. We have seen how, at New
Berne, the soldiers made shelters from the rubber
blankets to the best advantage, and it need not be
repeated here. The rubber blanket in those days
was two yards long, a yard and a quarter wide, and
weighed three pounds. It was indeed the soldier's
soldier's friend. The woolen blanket weighed about five
fnend. pOunc}S) ancj measured two and a quarter by one
and three quarters yards.
There are more ways than one to prepare a place
to sleep on the ground. It is true an old soldier
can sleep anywhere — on a plank, or on a rock even ;
but he will not if he can do any better — he will take
HOW to t^e kest; Of what there is every time. There is a
sleep.
way to sleep comfortably on dry ground. "I was
once spreading my rubber blanket on the ground
preparing to turn in, when an old soldier from
another regiment, who was passing by, said : 'If you
want to sleep well, dig a place for your hips, man.'
I looked up, and he continued : 'Scoop out a place
for your hips three or four inches deep, and another
about 'half as deep for your shoulders, then spread
your rubber and lie in the hollows, and you'll sleep
like a top, sir.' I thanked him and followed his
advice, and certainly never slept so well on a march
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 205
before." The point seems to be "Make the bed
fit your body," not your body fit the bed, as it would
have to on any hard surface like a board or hard
ground. But this cannot always be done, so the
soldier must try other ways. If a fellow is lucky
enough to find two logs, he can have a capital place
for his blanket between them, and they will keep
the wind off.
There are pleasures in bivouac that are entirely
lost in camp or tent life. There is no mistake about
it, a man breathes better ; and it is a pleasure to lie
half asleep and listen to the sounds of life around
. , , , . ,- , , Pleasures
on every side; watch the motions of the men, and of thg
hear them talk, joke or sing as they move about the bivouac.
fires, smoking as they always do at such times ; and
later, to awake when the fires are low, and all sounds
of man are hushed, to hear the wind go murmuring
by, and watch the stars in a beautiful, clear night ;
or to catch the lonely cry of some swift-winged
night bird as it flies quietly past, or, may be, hear
the voice of a wild animal from afar off ; and then
the sleeper's eyes close dreamily to open no more
till the bugle sounds reveille. All this is impossible
in tent life.
But there is a reverse side to this : say a freezing
206 The Story of Company A.
cold night, as on our return march from Goldsboro',
when the water froze in the canteens under our
heads as we lay on the ground with our feet to the
fire ; or at other times when we had to walk about
all night to keep from being chilled through ; or
again, cold, stormy nights, with the ground soaked
with water, and the rain falling doggedly all night
The
reverse long. These are certainly not pleasant pictures
side. to contemplate ; but still, the soldier with a good
rubber blanket, a thick, warm woolen one, and a
stout overcoat, is pretty well prepared for any sort
of weather ; and then, there are more pleasant, com-
fortable nights than stormy ones, more warm ones
than cold ; and, given, tents crowded to suffocation,
or a chance in the open air, I think most soldiers
would prefer the latter.
After all, it is coming pretty near nature, this
bivouac life ; and men get thoroughly saturated with
that spirit of wild freedom that possessed the old
freebooters. It is easy to see how soldiers long
absent from home, under a beloved and victorious
commander, could be led almost anywhere — no ex-
pedition would be too hazardous. Witness the
legions of Alexander and Hannibal, and the armies
of Napoleon.
2$th Regt., Mass. Vols. 207
On marches orders are sometimes issued against
foraging. This is very good. "Private property to
be respected," etc. Quite right. Such orders are Foraging,
always obeyed in a general way ; but suppose a
soldier does pick up a pair of chickens, what then ?
An instance of this. On a certain march in North
Carolina orders had been given that there must be
no foraging. We all understood it. One day at a halt
late in the afternoon, a soldier came slowly up to
the fire, rifle on his shoulder with a ham stuck on
his bayonet, and a pair of chickens in one hand.
At this moment who should appear but the Colonel
himself, riding slowly along the line ; and meeting
the forager face to face. We expected there would
Caught in
be a scene — and there was. "What did you pay the act.
for chickens to-day, my lad ?" asked Colonel Pickett.
"I didn't pay nothin' for 'em, sir." It was easy to
see that the Colonel was anything but angry\ but it
would not do to show it ; so, severely : "You heard
the orders against foraging?" "Why yes sir, I did,"
said the man, standing erect in the position of a
soldier, with the chickens still hanging by his side,
and the ham sticking on his bayonet ; and he ex-
pecting to have his head taken off right there. It
was too comical a sight ; the Colonel could not stand
27
208 The Story of Company A.
it, but again speaking as severely as he could while
trying to suppress laughter, said : "Well, I'd bear it
in mind after this," and he rode away ; but gave a
parting shot at the forager as he disappeared : "I
hope you'll have a good supper to-night." "Thank
you, sir." and he dropped the chickens and saluted
the Colonel in true military style.
Now the Colonel could have had the chickens
taken away from the soldier, placed him under ar-
rest, and on our return to camp made an example
of him for "disobeying orders." The effect would
have been that the soldier would have borne if with
a dogged indifference, and ever after would have
Efficient foraged every chance he got ; as it was, the soldier
reproof. was pum'shed enough. He had been reprimanded
by the Colonel before his comrades ; there was no
chance for him to be defiant about it ; and perhaps
worst of all, he was expected to have a good supper
off the chickens the Colonel knew he had disobeyed
orders to get. "Got off easy this time, didn't you ?"
said one. "Should think I did. Wish to God he'd
taken the chickens though," was the reply. No
more foraging by that soldier, on that tramp to say
the least. This was another instance of "not seeing
too much" on the part of the commander. That
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 209
soldier no doubt had a good chicken stew that night ;
and quite likely he sent a dishful to the Colonel's
fire, and probably the dish was returned empty, with
thanks ; and yet the army was perfectly safe.
What troubles soldiers the most on a march is the
want of water, and this is often hard to be borne.
Then, again, water obtained on marches is generally
vile stuff to drink. We had fo get it where we could
— from ditches by the wayside, swamps, and sluggish
streams ; and we had a variety of colors and tastes. Water.
To offset this we often resorted to the trick of
putting a couple of spoonfuls of ground coffee into
our canteen of water, and in a short time we had a
canteen of cold coffee — at least the coffee taste
proved stronger than that of the bad water ; and we
flattered ourselves that it was better for us.
To go without one meal was passed over as a
joke, and we pulled the old waist-belt tighter ; but
to be without water on a march under a burning-
sun in Carolina was terrible. When a column is
marching it is not so easy to get water as a novice
would think. A man will take a dozen canteens,
and, leaving his rifle to be carried by a comrade,
will start for water. Now if he succeeds in finding
water readily, and enough of it, he is very lucky ;
2io The Story of Company A.
but even then he has a tedious job to get it, for can-
teens fill slowly, and when he has them full he has
a heavy weight to carry, and does not feel like taking
a "double-quick" back to his company. He places
the canteens, some over his shoulders to hang on
each side, and carries some in each hand ; and when
he regains the road he finds that the column has
been moving all the time, and his regiment may be
•one, or even two miles away, and he must move
faster than his comrades in order to overtake them ;
so that when he reaches his own company he is
certainly more tired than those who stayed in the
column. It is this hard work to "catch up'' that
keeps many from dropping out who really need a
rest.
Another thing that troubles soldiers on a march,
especially if it is a forced march or one of any great
Foot length, is sore, chafed feet. One might think old
troubles, soldiers would never be troubled that way, but they
are — some more than others, to be sure — but with
getting the feet wet in crossing streams and again
marching on roads heavy with sand, "which works
into the brogans and finds plenty of room," the feet
will get sore in spite of the best of care. As a cav-
alry soldier looks after his horse, so an infantry
2$th Regf., Mass. Vols. 211
soldier looks out for his feet ; and to obviate this
trouble various expedients were tried, such as rub-
bing the inside of the stocking with soap or tallow,
which helped the matter some ; but it had to be
borne as best it could. The simple changing of the
stockings from one foot to the other while on a
march, was often a relief to the hot and blistered
feet.
As may be supposed, it is not the easiest thing in
the world to build a fire while on a march, and in Building
stormy weather ; and not every soldier is a good
fire-builder, but there were some who could build a
fire anywhere and at any time. Nobody seemed to
have matches, but they were always forthcoming
when wanted, from some place unknown. But it
requires a deal of skill and patience to coax the
flame of a lucifer into a camp fire. -Very few can
do it — not more than half a dozen men in a company
are good at building fires ; and there is most always
one who is the boss hand at it. He will build a fire
*
with everything "wet as thunder," and no fuss about
it either. He will always find dry twigs somewhere,
and his fire is always going first and burns the best.
He must have a gift that way.
The same with foraging. Some are "born so."
2 1 2 The Story of Company A.
These fellows would make a bee-line for anything
in the way of eatables, from any bivouac, in the dark-
est night that ever "blew." People in the South
had a way of burying sweet potatoes in the ground
for winter use. These chaps would go direct to
these places in the dark, as though they had buried
Peculiar . J
faculty, the potatoes there themselves. So with water.
I have seen a fellow start as soon as we had come
to a halt, take a tin cup and a few canteens, and
strike right out into the blackest night, and in
twenty or thirty minutes return with plenty of water.
He took no thought about it, made no inquiry, but
went straight for it, and always was successful. I
did not understand it — I do not now ; it was, and is
to-day to me a mystery. These men were invalu-
able to a company — they might be called company
bummers. Notable among those belonging to
Company A were Jimmy Wesson and Moses P.
Brown.
Goulding was the story-teller. Our orderly, Jack
story- Johnson, was also prominent in this line. My stars !
How he would tell stories — brino" down the house
singers,
every time. Alas ! Poor Jack has gone where —
well, I don't think they tell any stories there ! Then,
of course, there were singers. E. B. Fairbanks,
2$th Regt., Mass. Vols. 213
T. M. Ward ("Artemas" we called him) and Charles
B. Kendall stood here alone. Of course all hands
could sing when occasion required, but the three
mentioned were real singers, with fine voices. And
what did soldiers sing ? We had old Negro melo-
dies, college songs, and well-known patriotic airs,
as well as gems from the operas. But many of the
very popular songs we did not have until brought
to us by recruits. The last years of the rebellion
were much more prolific of war songs than the early
period.
Perhaps the most popular were those in which we
all could join. "John Brown" was a famous one, Army
and everybody could sing that as all army songs
were sung — after a fashion. Then there was that
very affecting one, in which all could join if they
chose :
Oh, ain't I glad to git out o' de wilderness,
Out o' de wilderness, out o' de wilderness ;
Oh, ain't I glad to git out o' de wilderness,
Bleating like a lamb.
/
( Chorus} B-a-a-a-a-a-h ! O-o-o-o-o-o-h !
Bleating like a lamb, bleating like a lamb ;
Oh, ain't I glad to git out o' de wilderness,
Bleating like a lamb.
214 The Story of Company A.
I went down town in a three ox wagon,
A three ox wagon, a three ox wagon ;
I went down town in a three ox wagon,
Bleating like a lamb.
B-a-a-a-a-a-h ! etc.
There was no end to this song ; verses were often
made up as they went along.
Another song was :
Three black crows sat on a tree,
And they were black as black could be.
Army These lines were repeated by one comrade, and then
songs. .... , .
all joined in —
One black crow said unto his mate,
What shall we do for food to ate ?
And so on until some one started another. This
"round" for as many as chose to join was a popular
one, and was usually started by Comrade Goulding.
Thus :
Uncle Abraham, Uncle Abraham,
Sleepest thou ? sleepest thou ?
While the girls are eating,
While the girls are eating
Pumpkin pie, pumpkin pie.
And so on, repeating, till all were tired out.
Annie Laurie was a great favorite. Others were
Old Hundred, Star Spangled Banner, and Red,
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 215
White and Blue, as a matter of course. Comrade
Bolster, with his rough, comic songs, always created
much fun around the bivouac fire. Comrade Henry
Goulding had a way of singing a few snatches of
old songs, which always brought a laugh when the
men were tired and cross, and good humor followed.
Here is one :
Oh, I'd pay ten dollars down,
And give it mighty free
If I could only find out Army
Who chucked that shell at me. son*s-
This is another :
The corporal stole a chicken,
And the captain thought it wrong ;
So to punish him he made him
Pick it all night long.
The quaint humor of Comrade Goulding was
really a boon to Company A.
It is amusing to think now how ignorant we all
were of soldier life at the start. We had somehow
an idea that a soldier must be all the time on the
move, marching or fighting ; and to be weeks or
perhaps months without one or the other was not
thought of.
It is interesting to note the difference in the arms
we used and those of to-day. Our old Enfield
28
2 1 6 The Story of Company A.
rifles were muzzle-loaders, about five feet long and
weighed nine and a half pounds, including a ramrod
three feet three inches long, which weighed ten'
ounces. The whole thing was clumsy and awkward
Enfieid in the extreme. The cartridge was of paper and
rifles, contained a conical leaden ball weighing an ounce.
These cartridges we tore open with our teeth, pour-
ing the powder down the rifle barrel, and sending
home the bullet with the paper for wadding, going
through the tedious process of drawing and re-
turning ramrod. How different the modern breech-
loader with its metallic cartridge, and so light, no
clumsy ramrod, no percussion caps, and so easily
managed.
Experience taught us that big knives and re-
Useiess vo^vers were useless lumber for a private soldier,
lumber, and we soon learned what a quantity of stuff was
absolutely worthless for a soldier's use. We will
suppose him to be on a march. The clothes he
stands in, rifle and equipments, canteen, haversack
containing plate, knife, fork and spoon, and his
rubber blanket (sometimes a woolen one also), are
all the old soldier will carry, and these are often
reduced in quantity, for a pound at the start may
seem ten pounds before he reaches the bivouac at
2$th Regt., Mass. Vols. 217
night. In summer time the scorching sun, and
roads heavy with dust or sand made it very tedious
marching, while in winter, wind, rain and cold are
equally disagreeable.
The distance marched in a day by foot soldiers is
often commented upon on account of the few miles
traveled. A man, it is said, can walk forty miles in
a day. True, a good walker might do it, but he is
one man, goes as he pleases, and has no heavy load ,
' Distance
of rifle, etc., to carry. To march a brigade in a day marched.
as far as one man can walk is simply impossible.
The more men, the less number of miles traversed.
It is good marching for a regiment to travel two
miles an hour for the day, and twenty miles in ten
or twelve hours is more than the average. A col-
umn of cavalry would hardly move over four miles
per hour. If the moving column is a large one the
regiments in advance may be miles on the road be-
fore those in the rear are in motion ; and the fre-
quent halts caused by crossing streams, accidents, or
for the purpose of rest, are very harrassing to the
soldiers in the center or at the rear of the column.
The head of the column is the best place to march.
The road is clear for one thing, and there are none
to stir up the dust; and when the order "Halt"
2i8 The Story of Company A.
comes, those in advance have full benefit, for they
drop at once to the ground and are getting the rest
they all need while the order is running down the
line ; and by the time those in the rear receive the
order the head of the column is moving again.
The best Then those in advance would be more likely to
reach their bivouac first, and have their fires built
and coffee made before the others, which is a good
point ; but the regiment or brigade in advance to-
day may be in the rear tomorrow, so they even the
thing up in a way.
Perhaps a good idea of a column on a march may
be had by fancying a dozen miles of road in our own
section filled with an almost solid mass of moving
men, with batteries intermingled in the line, and
ambulances, ammunition and baggage wagons in
the rear, while a cloud of cavalry rides on in ad-
vance. It is easy to see that the advance would
have the best position and the least annoyance on a
march.
As the hours go by and the soldiers grow tired,
the men so jolly at the start, sober down ; and as
darkness comes on there is little talking except to
growl, and wonder "why in — thunder don't they
give us a rest?" and nothing is heard besides but
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 219
the rattling of tin cups and canteens, and the tramp,
tramp of the weary thousands. At these times
there is a deal of thinking done — sober thinking
about home, its comforts, friends, and the like ; and Tired
the monotony is broken after a while by such ex- soldiers.
pressions as "Wish I was h-o-m-e." "Me, too."
"Same here." "I'm another," etc. Soon some one
tells a story, or gets off a stale joke, or strikes up a
song, and the spirits of the men lighten up again.
Soon comes the welcome order "Halt."
Although we were always provided with cooked
rations on a march, still it would happen sometimes
that we run short, and then we tried our hands at
cooking a bit. Now hard-tack, unless a fellow is
pretty hungry, is mighty poor fodder ; but we on Uses of
occasions would improve it in cooking. Various
dishes can be made from the omnipresent hard-tack.
Soaked in cold water it becomes soft and puffy ; now
drop it into a pan of hot bacon fat and fry a few
minutes, and tell me, if you have been a soldier, is
it not a dish fit for a king — if he is a hungry one ?
Soaking hard-tack in hot water would spoil it — make
it leathery and tough. Then we made a sort of
pudding of it, and also the "slapjack sublime."
Sometimes the hard-tack was wormy (rare ex-
220 The Story of Company A.
ception), but that was no detriment, for then we had
meat puddings. The inhabitants of the hard-tack
were curious creatures — some had legs, some wings,
and some had both ; and it was very funny to see
one try to crawl one way with its legs and fly the
other way with its wings. Hard-tack pounded up
fine and boiled with bits of bacon, potato, or any-
thing the soldier happened to have, and salted a bit,
gave us a sort of skouse — "slosh" we sometimes
called it. Skouse, like the mysterious hash of civil-
Skouse. ..... . , . T ,
ized life, was, at times, rather uncertain. 1 have
heard of bits of pumpkin, the wristband of a
soldier's woolen shirt, and the heel of a brogan being
found in a dish of "slosh," — 'twas not a good season
for slosh, either.
A man who has not been a soldier and seen active
campaigning does not know what it is to be either
comfortable or uncomfortable. What comfort after
a hard day's march to come to an early halt in a
Soldiers' clear field, fires soon built, coffee quickly made, and
comfort. a|| ^ancjs to SUpper. How soon the ground dries
off around the bivouac fire. What chatting, joking,
laughing is going on — tired of course; but now
the pipes are brought to the front — how the boys
did stick to their pipes, sorry looking ones, some of
2$tk Regt., Mass. Vols. 221
them — and what enjoyment they get out of the old
briar-woods. Now as the genial warmth spreads
around and over the whole circle, tell me, Old
Comrade, is it not solid comfort ? Or again, in
camp, what though it is cold and rainy outside ?
We have a good, stout canvas over our heads, and
a comfortable bunk to crawl into by and by ; so let
it rain. We are off duty to-night. Poor fellows,
walking your beats in the wet, we pity you ! We
may be there tomorrow, but not now. Light the ^r^t
candles. How cheerful it looks ! Around the side-
center-pole stand the rifles ; how their bright barrels
glisten in the mellow light. The little stove works
admirably. Now the pipes, of course. Pass the
Killy-kanick ; or Billy Bow-legs, is it ? How the
smoke circles around the pole, filling the top of the
old Sibley tent. Here is a comrade writing a letter
home ; another reading a paper, smoking the while ;
another is doing a bit of mending ; and others are
having a game — Old Sledge, may be — with the
same old greasy cards that have done duty for so
many months. Old Comrade, tell me, is not this
real comfort ?
The boxes and bundles from home were always a
source of great pleasure and comfort to the soldiers.
222 The Story of Company A.
What lots of things those boxes held — clothing,
eatables, writing materials, thread, needles and such
little knicknacks. When a comrade received a box
from home it was surely a festal day in that tent.
All these were comforts indeed.
But there was another side from all this. What
could be more uncomfortable than a cold, cheerless
bivouac on the frozen ground, no fires allowed — too
near the enemy — consequently no coffee. We
munch the ever-present hard-tack in shivering'
Discom-
fort, silence, and quench our thirst with cold water from
the old canteen. Sleep is impossible, and we move
about all through the long, gloomy night to keep
from becoming immovable before morning. Again,
Old Comrade, is not this in the extreme uncomfort-
able ?
It is at first thought singular, perhaps, but it is,
nevertheless, true, that a private soldier sees and
knows little of what is going on around him in bat-
tle. If the line is formed and firing has commenced ;
if he is in his place in the ranks where it \s give and
take, he can see or know only what is going on in
his immediate vicinity. He is obeying orders ; the
enemy are before him ; he is loading and firing his
rifle as he is ordered to do. He hears the roar of
2$th RegL, Mass. Vols. 223
artillery, the solid shot whistle by, and the shells go
screeching past, crashing through the trees if any
stand in the way. Yes, he actually sees these come.
He hears bullets zip, zip through the air so spite-
ful ; and he also hears the sickly thud of the ball as
it pierces the breast of his near comrade. He sees
his companions as they fall around him, and are
carried to the rear, or lying at his feet, dying. He
sees the gaps made in the lines by the fallen ones
closed up again. The noise and confusion at such
times are simply infernal. Wild hurrahs break upon Limited
the air as some part of the line is ordered to charge ;
but unless close by he hardly knows what brigade military
it may be. He hears at last, perhaps, that the mtme~
ments.
enemy are falling back beaten, and that a victory is
won ; and that is about all there is of it to a private
soldier in the ranks. The soldier marches and
counter-marches, — why, except from hearsay, he
does not understand. Regiments and brigades are
pushed about by the commanding general like so
many pieces on a chess board, and the soldiers
know as little as the pawns of the reasons therefor.
Truly, the private soldier's means of knowing about
these things are rather limited, at best.
29
224 The Story of Company A.
We learned from prisoners what brigades were
opposed to us, the names of their commanders, etc.
Thus, at Arrowfield Church, we heard from pris-
oners that Massachusetts and South Carolina had
jnet in a fair combat ; that the Twenty-fifth Massa-
Sources of
informa- chusetts and the Twenty-fifth South Carolina had
on' come together on the bloody field ; and we knew,
for we had seen it, that the sons of South Carolina
had been beaten — scattered like withered leaves.
So in all engagements, information is gained from
prisoners.
• Commanding generals do not usually consult
with privates in regard to "what is to be done and
how to do it." Still, it is true, a soldier with eyes
and ears open, and tongue in his mouth, will pick
up a great deal of hearsay information from those
about him. But of great military movements, or of
the movements of any brigade save his own, he can
know but little till the thing is done. It doubtless
happens, sometimes, that commanding officers drop
a few words of information in the presence of some
soldier, but of what account is it ? It is also fre-
quently the case that regimental officers themselves
do not know what is to be done ; they are simply
obeying orders.
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 225
We often hear of men who had rather go into a
battle than "eat a good dinner." These men are
not found in the ranks as a rule ; and wherever
found, there is no doubt about it, if the truth is told,
they had rather "eat their dinner," and take their
chance in a fight later on. "The whistling of bullets
was music to his ears" is an expression often used.
Quite likely, this ; but a deal depends on the dis-
tance of the bullet from the ears. If, in passing, it
chips off a piece of the ear, somehow the music is
not so pleasant as though the bullet was a few rods
further off, and it was a piece of some other soldier's
ear that was taken. Such talk should be taken for
what it is worth, which is very little.
All men were not equally good at marching. It
was not the largest and strongest men that marched Endur_
the best. Those of lighter build, wiry, kinky fel- ance.
lows, were, as a rule, the toughest, and showed the
most endurance in campaigning.
Of the use of whiskey in the army, I must say
that in three years' experience of soldier life, I do
not remember a single instance (except in hospitals
and cases of sickness) in \yhich it was of the slight-
est use or benefit to the soldier, or where hot coffee
did not serve much better. I have often had the
226 The Story of Company A.
boys say to me, "Sergeant, I wish I hadn't touched
that whiskey." Coffee was the soldier's friend ;
whiskey was his foe.
It is true that the soldier may forget until recalled
to his mind the hardships of campaigning — the
weary night's march, the terrible thirst, the blister-
ing feet. He may forget days of suffering which
at the time seemed almost beyond endurance ; but
the pleasant — yes, happy — hours spent around the
camp fire, and at the cheerful bivouac, he never can
forget.
CHAPTER XI.
RE-ENLISTING.
A FTER getting comfortably settled in our new
quarters at Camp Upton, the boys entered into a
Camp
Upton.
new industry for "off duty" hours. They made fre-
quent visits to the wrecks of the frigates Congress
and Cumberland, and obtained bits of copper and
wood from which they made rings, pins, crosses and
the like. Busy they must be, and this sort of busi-
ness occupied their leisure time for days.
The month of December passed quietly away.
There was enough to do, surely, with guard and
fatigue duty, and the regular daily drills. During
this month we were reviewed by General Butler. General
This was his first appearance to us, and we looked Butler-
at him with curious eyes as the man of whom we
had heard so much.
228 The Story of Company A.
The camp here was a comfortable one, close on
the banks of the James river, and our stay was very
pleasant for soldier life. January, 1864, opened
cold and disagreeable enough, but it mattered not.
We were in good quarters, and enjoyed ourselves
here.
Early in December there had been some talk of
re-enlisting. Government was offering large boun-
ties for old soldiers to re-enlist, with a furlough of
Re-enlist-
ing, thirty days, they to be known as "veterans," etc.
All this was quite tempting, but the idea did not
seem very popular among us. Colonel Pickett had
explained to the Regiment in his usual short, but
clear and expressive way, the whole scheme ; and
without the slightest attempt to influence the men
in any way, told them to think the matter over
carefully and decide for themselves. This was frank,
Colonel's open, square and above-board, and what might be
attitude. expectecj from Colonel Pickett. The absence of the
Colonel during the re-enlistment complications was
extremely unfortunate. His application for leave of
absence, however, was based upon the belief that
the Regiment, being in winter quarters, would re-
main inactive until early spring ; and the re-enlist-
• ment scheme, to all appearances, having subsided,
Regt., Mass. Vols. 229
he availed himself of the opportunity offered by the
1864.
Commander of the Department, at Fortress Mon-
roe, of accompanying what was then supposed to be
the last detachment of re-enlisted men, to Massa-
chusetts for thirty days. He was utterly astonished,
after reaching Worcester, to learn that the re-enlist-
ing fever had broken out again, and that the Regi-
ment was to come home on Veteran furlough.
Recruits were around among us now who had
received sums which seemed to the old soldiers, with
their hundred dollars bounty and their thirteen dol- Large
lars a month, almost fabulous ; and when one man
proved to us that he had received over twelve hun-
dred dollars down, and would receive his regular
soldier's pay too, it set us to figuring up the thing.
(These large sums were paid by individuals who
were drafted, for substitutes. The draft was being
enforced at this time.)
We were receiving the large sum of thirteen
dollars a month. This for three years would be
$468., or adding the regular $100. always paid by
Government, $568. for three years work, while this
fellow received more than double that amount in
bounties for the time he might be wanted, one year
or two, as the war might last. This was very dis-
230 The Story of Company A.
- couraging to the old soldiers, and many, no doubt,
thought more strongly of re-enlisting to get the
bounty the Government was offering.
At different times in December, 1863, some one
hundred and fifty men of the Regiment had re-en-
listed, and early in January, 1864, sixty more. On
Depar- ^g j-^h of this month the first party of re-enlisted
ture of re-
enlisted men left on their thirty days' furlough. These men
men. Were accompanied by Captain Foster and Lieuten-
ants Daly and Upton. A few days later over one
hundred more left, accompanied by Colonel Pickett,
Captain Tucker, and Lieutenants Bessey, McCarter
and Woodworth. Lieutenant Woodworth had been
appointed a recruiting officer, and had had charge
thus far of the recruits in the regiment.
With the departure of Colonel Pickett it was sup-
posed by at least the private soldiers, that this re-
enlisting business had "played out." Not so, how-
ever ; the vessel on which the Colonel sailed was
Renewed hardly out of sight before the talk of re-enlisting
efforts. Degan to increase, and the officers openly expressed
their wish to take home the Twenty-fifth as a vet-
eran regiment for a thirty days' furlough. To do
this, three-fourths of the duty men must re-enlist.
One day a printed order was brought to the
2 $th Regt., Mass. Vols. 231
Orderly's tent by Sergeant-Major Charles B. Kendall,
with the request that it be read to Company A.
Accordingly the men were ordered to "fall in,"
and the Orderly Sergeant, Samuel H. Putnam,
read, as required, the order; and "that no misunder-
standing might occur," read it carefully the second
time. The substance of it was that all men re-en-
listing would receive the large bounty offered by
the Government (amount specified in the order),
a thirty days' furlough, and be known as "veteran
soldiers." Those not re-enlisting would be "per- An as-
manently transferred to other organizations to serve toundtns
order.
out their time of enlistment ; non-commissioned officers
to be reduced to the ranks" This was plain English,
and fell like a clap of thunder on the ears of the
men. "Drive us into it like dogs, will they?" "Con-
temptible." "Tell 'em to go to h — 1, Sergeant ! "
Such were the exclamations heard after the reading
of the order. It is unnecessary to say that the
Orderly Sergeant made use of some forcible lan-
guage when he returned the order to Sergeant-
Major Kendall.
It has been doubted by some that such an out-
rageous order ever could have been issued to Union
soldiers, though there are plenty of men of "Old
30
232 The Story of Company A,
Company A," now living, who heard it read and
will take oath to it ; but to satisfy others, the writer
addressed a note of inquiry concerning- this order to
General Butler, as follows :
WORCESTER, August , 1879.
Gen1 Ben. F. Butler,
Lowell, Mass.
Sir : I was a member of Co. A, 25th
Reg., Mass. Vols. ; and while at Newport News, Virginia, an order
was issued concerning the re-enlistment of soldiers, in such terms
as these : — Those re- enlisting should have the large bounties
offered, 30 days' furlough, and be known as veteran soldiers.
Those not re-enlisting should be permanently transferred to other
organizations to serve out the balance of their term of enlistment ;
non-com, officers to be reduced to the ranks. It was my duty as
orderly-sergeant to read this order to my company. My state-
ment to this effect, however, has been questioned ; and accordingly
I wish to know from you if such an order w^as issued, and by whose
authority. This inquiry is made for my own personal satisfaction.
Yours truly,
SAMUEL H. PUTNAM.
General Butler's reply is here given :
General
Butler's
WASHINGTON, D. C., Sept. 4, 1879.
letter.
Dear Sir :
I cannot positively state of my own knowledge
by whose authority the order you speak of as to the re-enlistment
of veterans was made ; but I can say that I knew that such an
order was made, and that it was issued with due authority. If it
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 233
was issued from my headquarters it was only issued by authority
of the War Department, and was returned and never objected to 1864.
by that Department. Yours truly,
(Signed} BENJ. F. BUTLER.
S. H. Putnam, Esq.,
389 Main St.,
Worcester, Mass.
This letter is now in possession of the writer.
This, it would seem, must settle the question. But
the order, wherever it may have originated, whether
with the War Department or in the fertile brain of
Major-General Benjamin F. Butler, was mean, cow-
ardly and contemptible ; and after the departure of ature
the trans-
Colonel Pickett, Lieutenant Bessey, and those who action.
went home on furlough, the manner in which the
re-enlisting was conducted in the Twenty-fifth Reg-
iment, was, if possible, still more mean, cowardly
and contemptible.* It did seem as though all in
authority had lost their heads. They could hardly
praise enough those who would re-enlist, neither
could they say enough in censure of those who
would not. Officers could be seen almost any time
in the tents of the men urging them to put their
names down ; men were gathered in little groups
all over the camp discussing the subject ; still not
* I? this strong language? I am responsible. — S. H. P.
234 The Story of Company A.
enough re-enlisted to allow the Regiment to go
home on furlough.
Promises implying promotion were freely made,
and every inducement that could be thought of was
used. Other subtile agencies were at work, and
under their influence some acts were committed
that have been a source of regret ever since. The
climax was reached when the Regiment was drawn
up in line and harangued by the officers, the Lieu-
tenant-Colonel leading off. He spoke of the very
liberal bounties offered by the Government for re-
speeches enlisted men ; of the great benefits to be gained,
°f the with no great risk ; of the thirty days' furlough ; and
officers.
said doubtless the war would soon be ended, and if
a man should happen to lose an arm, he could say
he was a veteran soldier and lost it in the service of
his country ! On the other hand, he consoled those
who would not re-enlist by saying they would be
sent to Yorktown, which was a very sickly place —
a perfect cemetery — and their bones would bleach
there with those of McClellan's old mules ! He had
rather go into battle than go to Yorktown, and he
closed by saying, "All the best men are re-enlisting,
and there will be nothing left but the chaff of the
Twenty-fifth Regiment ! " — a very unfortunate ex-
2$th Regt., Mass. Vols. 235
pression, and one that is remembered to this day.
1864.
The Major followed in very few words, advising
them .all to re-enlist. Captain Tom O'Neil and
others also spoke, and the men were dismissed to
their quarters to think the matter over. All this
twaddle of speech-making could be brought out if
necessary, for there was "a child among 'em taking
notes" at the time ; but it reads very flat now to
anyone who was there.
The effect of this order in Company A was that
not as many re-enlisted as would have done so
without it. Some who had thought seriously of E/ect °f
. . 111 i • the order.
doing so now swore they would not under any cir-
cumstances. The truth is, the men of Company A
were a hard lot to drive or frighten into a measure
like this. Prompt to obey, they were just as prompt
to defend their own rights (very few in the army),
and to express their opinions and stand by them.
It is but justice to say that in Company A not the
slightest effort was made by its officers to influence
the men to re-enlist. Captain Goodwin was at this
time on detached service in Massachusetts, Lieu-
tenant Bessey was absent on furlough, and Lieu-
tenant Burr was in command of the Company.
236 The Story of Company A.
"Good God ! " said one of Company A, "if Pickett
was here he'd stop this wretched tomfoolery," and
he would have done so ; but Pickett was not there,
and the tomfoolery went on. This was all very
amusing, but in the eagerness of those in command
to carry out their scheme of taking home the Twen-
ty-fifth as a veteran regiment, they overstepped the
bounds of justice and right.
Considerable talk there was of patriotism during
the re-enlisting excitement. Great inducements
Was it offered — men re-enlist. With no large bounties,
how many would have re-enlisted at this time ? Pa-
ism f
triotism was it ?
On the iQth of January fifty men, and on the 2Oth,
two hundred men were re-enlisted ; and as the time
appointed for this business had expired, those who
had not re-enlisted were ordered to start for York-
town on the morrow.
The result of air this was that the Regiment was
now divided into two factions — "Vets" (veterans)
and "Used-to-bes."* Not that there was anything
like animosity among us, but there was a sort of
feeling; and it was plain to be seen ever after,
* "We want to go home and be citizens as we used to be" — hence the name.
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 237
though orders were obeyed as before, that the en-
thusiasm of the earlier days of the Regiment had
departed, never to return.
On the 2ist of January Companies A, G and I,
as companies, and other members of the Regiment,
to the number of two hundred and twenty-five men,
left Camp Upton in heavy marching order for that
cemetery, Yorktown, under command of Captain
Parkhurst and Lieutenants Saul and Johnson, the
latter formerly Orderly Sergeant of Company A
("Old Posey"). Doctor Hoyt also accompanied us.
As they stood ready to march "I went up and down ,. ,
•* Yorktown
the line looking into the faces of the men. Firm and
resolute they were. Here one in the ranks says :
'Good-bye, Bill,' to one in the camp ; 'Good luck,
Sam,' from one in the camp to one in the ranks.
Shaking hands here and there, — tearful eyes on
both sides. It was a sorry sight."
They were thinking men. They had taken in the
situation at a glance, had quietly thought over the
matter, and had decided they would not re-enlist.
Many had families at home, and three years' ab-
sence was enough for them. Were they not right?
They had fulfilled their contract with the Govern-
238 The Story, of Company A.
ment thus far to the very letter, and would to the
end. Why should they do more ?
They could not be bought or bribed with large
bounties and a thirty days' furlough. They could
not be cajoled by honeyed words in promise of
promotion or preferment. Nor were they fright-
ened by the harsh words of that contemptible order
with its "permanently transferred" and "reduced to
the ranks" threats. Neither did visions of that
dread cemetery, Yorktown, disturb their slumbers
in the least.
Here were men by scores who had been in every
fight and on every march in which the Twenty-fifth
had participated ; never known to shirk a day's duty
or shun a day's work ; always ready — now kicked
out — the chaff of the Twenty-fifth Regiment.
To their credit be it said, they always spoke well
of their old comrades, and did their best to uphold
the honor and name of the Regiment. Under the
blue jacket of the private soldier there stood a man.
This matter of re-enlisting was simply disgrace-
ful, and is the one foul blot on the otherwise fair
escutcheon of the Twenty-fifth Regiment. A man
can be a man though but a private soldier ; he can
2$th Regt., Mass. Vols. 239
be less than a man though he wears the badge of
office in the United States service.
It may be said, Why call up these things to-day ?
"The story of Company A" cannot be told without it.
"We should forgive and forget" — how pretty! For-
give is one thing, forget another ; the first is easy,
the latter impossible.
The order to march was given, and we left Camp
Upton about 1 1 A. M. of January 2ist, supposing we Onour
had seen the last of it and our old comrades. We cemetery.
had expected, or rather, hoped, that some officer of
our own regiment would, man-fashion, volunteer to
go with us, see what became of us, and stay with us
to the end. Here was an opportunity — he would
have been one of the most popular officers in the
Regiment ; but he did not come. We hear much of
the love officers have for their men. Was this a
specimen of it ?
The day's march was a pleasant one of ten or
• twelve miles, and we bivouacked in the early even-
ing- near an old church at Little Bethel. This old Little
• ... Bethel.
church — a mere shell with nothing left inside but
the floor — we cleaned out as well as we could, and
after supper candles were lighted, a violin found,
and, a dance started. And such a dance ! From
3*
240 The Story of Company A,
— the outside it was a curious sight — light streaming-
out of the sashless windows and wide open doors,
while rude bursts of laughter were heajd from the
dancers and lookers-on. It was a weird scene, and
rivalled the witch dance in Tarn O'Shanter. As the
fun waxed furious it was amusing to see the guard,
posted by the Captain some time before, come
quietly into the building, cooly take off equipments,
set their rifles up in a corner, and join in the "all
hands round." This was really not according to
"army regulations," and might be "conduct preju-
dicial to good order and military discipline"; but
then, what of it? Who were we, anyhow? We
were not supposed to belong to the Twenty-fifth
Regiment — we had been kicked out of that ; and we
knew nothing of any other. We were a sort of
independent battalion, and we did feel independent.
So the fun went on until the candles burnt low,
when the dancing ceased, and the guard donned
their equipments, shouldered their rifles, and strode
out into the darkness to their posts.
The next day the march was continued to York-
town over miles of McClellan's corduroy roads. We
reached Yorktown, a distance of about twelve miles,
a little before noon, and here we halted till nearly
2$th Regt., Mass. Vols. 241
6 P. M., when orders were received to push on to
_QC .
Williamsburg, some fifteen miles further. We saw
no reason for this ; we could have made the distance
instead of resting at Yorktown ; now it would be an
all night's job. But we supposed this to be a part Severe
of the great re-enlisting scheme to break us down
— twenty-seven miles in one day in heavy marching
order; and the cry was raised: "Now will you re-
enlist?" "Oh, why did you go for a soger?"
This march to Williamsburg was quite a severe
one, still there was very little straggling, and about
T o'clock on the morning of January 23d we reached
our journey's end. We bivouacked on the ground,
cold and frosty as it was, and slept till broad day-
light.
We pitched our tents here, for Companies A, G
and I had left Camp Upton as companies, and had
tents and all company property with them. Our camp
camp was known as Camp Hancock, in honor Q{Hancock-
General Hancock, who had fought over this ground.
This was near the junction of Queen's creek and
York river.
Lieutenant Burr arrived shortly after, and took
command of Company A, acting as adjutant. We
soon commenced doing picket duty just outside of
242 The Story of Company A.
Williamsburg. One day about sixty men of the
Eleventh Connecticut arrived here, and were located
near us in shelter tents. They had not re-enlisted,
— what a bad lot of fellows they must have been !
We wondered if they were the chaff of the Eleventh
Connecticut.
Camp Hancock was about two miles from Wil-
liamsburg, and nearly the same from Fort Magruder,
which mounted twenty guns with a ditch around it.
The face of the country in this vicinity was dotted
with rifle pits, ditches, breastworks, and the like,
and was thickly strewn with fragments of arms and
equipments, clothing, etc.; and the long lines of
Effects trenches near Fort Magruder, now sunken, where
of war. men ky hundrecis were buried, showed the terrible
struggle the Union soldiers had in taking Williams-
burg. It is said they charged three times before
the fort was taken, and then it was flanked. At one
point in this vicinity ten fortifications, forts, batteries,
etc. were in sight.
The country here was fairly wooded with cedar,
walnut, chincapin, elm and chestnut. From the
river we had oysters, very abundant and large, and
we went for them strong. This country is pro-
nounced very healthy.
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 243
Our second day at Camp Hancock we had visitors
1864.
from Camp Upton. It appeared they had not yet
got the three-fourths necessary of the duty men to
re-enlist, and Adjutant McConville and Lieutenant
Drennan made their appearance. McConville had
not been present during the re-enlisting excitement,
and we were surprised to see him here. They tried Re-eniist-
11 i • i ing agents
to talk more re-enlisting to us, but it was no use ;
and when (in accordance with their orders it was
said) they desired Surgeon Hoyt to put as many of
us on the sick list as possible, thereby increasing
the proportion of duty men at Camp Upton, he
laughed in their faces, and said that men who could
stand the journey to Williamsburg in heavy march-
ing order, were not very sick he guessed. All this
was very queer — it made Captain Parkhurst laugh.
He told the visitors they had got into the wrong
pew ; so they went back to Camp Upton, taking one
or two men to re-enlist.
On January 2Qth Major Mulcahy, of the One-
hundred-and-thirty-ninth New York, assumed com-
3 Officers
mand. Our own officers left a day or two later ; leave.
and we were then in a singular situation : two hun-
dred and twenty-five men of one of the best Massa-
chusetts regiments without an officer of their own
244 The Story of Company A.
'
- to command them, wringing words of praise from
the lips of the strange officers who were placed over
them, and loud in their praise of the Commander of
their old regiment, and of the men who composed
it. It was a singular state of affairs.
February 4th we broke camp and marched to the
camp of the One-hundred-and-thirty-ninth New
York, and being drawn up in line, were counted off
in lots and assigned to the different companies of
Assigned, ^^ regiment- Some went to their camp, and two
lots went into Fort Magruder with Companies F and
G of that regiment. This, we thought, was the last
act in that contemptible farce of re-enlisting.
The next day at dress parade, Colonel Roberts
made a short speech. Addressing himself to the
members of the Twenty-fifth, he complimented them
on their soldierly appearance, and said he under-
stood the Yankee boys thought they were perma-
nently transferred to his regiment, and that the non-
commissioned officers were to be reduced to the
/erred, ranks ; this was a mistake, as they were only tem-
porarily assigned to his regiment, and would remain
only until the re-enlisted men returned from their
furlough, when they were to go back to their own
regiment. As for non-commissioned officers, he
2$th Regt., Mass, Vols. 245
had no authority to reduce them to the ranks — their
own regimental officers must do that. He would
simply request them to do duty with his men in
their respective ranks until they did return to the
Twenty- fifth.
This little speech explained the whole matter.
We found in Colonel Roberts a man. It is fair to Colonel
Roberts'
presume that the officers of the Twenty-fifth must speech.
have known as much about the re-enlisting as* did
Colonel Roberts, but concealed it from the men,
and set up a scarecrow in the re-enlisting farce.
The speech of Colonel Roberts was received with a
round of cheers by the men of the Twenty-fifth, in
which the New York regiment joined, and for some
minutes the Colonel could not be heard. He then
stated that a raid was to be undertaken on the
morrow in which his regiment was to join, and all
must expect a severe march. To the Twenty-fifth
Regiment he had nothing to say ; they knew their
duty and would do it he was assured, though with-
out a single officer of their own. Parade was then
dismissed.
Early morning of February 6th found us in line,
and we marched into Williamsburg. When the
column was formed it comprised the One-hundred-
246 The Story of Company A.
and-thirty-ninth and One-hundred-and-eighteenth
New York, two regiments of colored troops, and I
believe but a single battery, all under command of
General Wistar. We heard that a regiment of cav-
alry was to follow us. As we marched through the
town it was plain to be seen that it had suffered
from the effects of the war ; few inhabitants were
left ; many houses deserted and many burned.
Williams J J
burg. William and Mary College, one of the oldest in
America, had also been destroyed by Union soldiers
in revenge, it was said, for having been fired on
from its windows. Though the walls were mostly
standing, it was completely ruined. Williamsburg
was a still, sunny old place, with one principal street,
and our boys, when we left this section, had learned
to love the old town for the air of peace and quiet-
ness that seemed to hang over it.
About a mile beyond the town we entered the
forest, when skirmishers, or rather, flankers, were
thrown out, and the column moved on at a good,
smart pace till noon, when a halt was made to let
the cavalry pass, of which there must have been a
regiment, say twelve or fifteen hundred men. From
this time the march was quite severe, and began to
tell on the New Yorkers. We of the Twenty-fifth
2 $th Regt., Mass. Vols. 247
however, were used to this sort of business, and
-~:> 1864.
worried but little over it. At every halt our boys
would drop to the ground and get all the rest there
was to be had, and move on at the word of command.
Major Mulcahy hardly knew how to take us ; he
endeavored to keep us on our feet, but it was no go.
He talked loud and scolded some. Colonel Roberts,
riding up, asked him the cause of the trouble :
"Why, you see, Colonel, at every halt these men Major
simultaneously sit down." This expression brought ucay-
out a roar of laughter from the Twenty-fifth boys,
in which Colonel Roberts joined. The Major dis-
appeared.
Fcr miles after this the soldiers tramped on in
perfect good humor. Most of the A boys instead
of loading down with rations for three days, figured
it thus: four hard-tack for breakfast (with coffee), Rations.
six hard-tack for dinner (with salt horse), four hard-
tack for supper (with coffee again) — forty-two hard-
tack, all told, for three days, which with coffee and
meat, was ample, and gave us a light load to carry.
We marched rapidly, reaching New Kent, about
thirty miles, near midnight ; and after coffee, and a
rest of three hours, were on the road again. About
noon we reached Baltimore Cross Roads ; here
32
248 The Story of Company A.
several roads intersect, one going direct to Rich-
mond, crossing the Chickahominy at Bottom's
bridge, only two or three miles distant ; others to
White House and Charles City.
We struck the Chickahominy river at Bottom's
bridge, but the enemy were found there in force,
Bottoms and the bridge had been destroyed ; so excepting a
bridge, little desultory firing, with six or eight killed and
wounded, nothing was done, and we returned to
Williamsburg, bivouacking one night near what was
called the "Twelve Mile Ordinary," where once
was a tavern.
After near three days' absence, not a man of the
Twenty-fifth was found straggling ; but the New
Yorkers kept coming in for twenty-four hours after.
We had marched from fifty to sixty miles. Be-
No
stragglers ^ore we Dr°ke ranks Colonel Roberts again spoke
to his soldiers. He called attention to the fact that
while his men were picked up straggling in such
numbers, not one of the Twenty-fifth was so found.
He also called the attention of officers as well as
men to the discipline and behavior of those who,
without an officer of their own, could go on a severe
march without a straggler, and return in better con-
dition than his own regiment. The truth is, the
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 249
Twenty-fifth boys were right on their "proud," and
1864*
kept up their dignity and self-respect, and after all
had at heart the honor and good name of their old
regiment.
The object of the expedition seems to have been
to make a stand at Bottom's bridge while the cav-
alry made a dash at Richmond, liberating prisoners,
and burning the city if possible ; but, as we have
seen, it was a failure.
Our picket line extended from the York to the
James rivers, about four miles ; and with gunboats
on either flank, was a strong one. After our raid,
prisoners escaped from Richmond came in often, in
squads of from four to six men ; and on the 23d
of February, five officers came in and reported no
enemy between us and Bottom's bridge. A squad
from Longstreet's corps came in and surrendered
themselves at another time.
One of the picket posts in Williamsburg was at
the old brick house once occupied by Governor
Page of Virginia. It was built of brick imported
from England. The library in this mansion was a
room about eighteen by twenty feet, and the walls
had been covered with books from floor to ceiling ;
but now the shelving had been torn down, and the
250 The Story of Company A.
floor was piled with books in wretched disorder
1864.
— trampled on — most pitiful to see. In the attic
of this old house the boys found trunks and
boxes of papers of a century past — documents,
letters, etc. Among the latter were those bearing
the signatures of such men as Jefferson, Madison,
Richard Henry Lee ; and one or more signed by
Washington.
Early on the morning of February igth orders
came for the One-hundred-and-thirty-ninth to pre-
pare for a march at 7 A. M., with three days' rations.
They were sent to Newport News, and we were now
more alone. The Twenty-fifth boys in Fort Magruder
alone. were relieve(J by a company of heavy artillery, and
marched to the old camp of the New York regiment,
and we were all together once more. Two lieuten-
ants from the One-hundred-and-forty-eighth New
York, whose names I have forgotten, assumed com-
mand of the Twenty-fifth men here at this camp,
which was known as Camp West ; and we were
divided into three companies, thus : Company A,
Sergeant Putnam ; Company G, Sergeant Lee ;
Company I, Sergeant Moulton ; and with the two
lieutenants in command we were in good shape.
Camp West (named for Colonel West who was in
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 251
command here) was very comfortable. The men
1864.
had wooden shanties, while the officers' quarters
were very pretty cottages made of upright Jogs, one
story high, most of them, and very neatly fashioned.
We had not drawn clothing for some time, and
when we left Camp Upton many of the men wanted
jackets, shoes, and other articles ; and the hard ser-
vice since leaving that camp had put us in bad shape.
In some cases men going on duty would have to siate of
take the shoes and jackets of those who came off',anefarmSm
and thus keep things moving. The New York offi-
cers were, naturally, unwilling to be responsible for
clothing issued to our men ; and non-commissioned
officers being of no account, or rather, in a military
sense, not responsible parties, of course we could
not get clothing, and had to resort to such means
as have been mentioned.
"I one day found some old shoes in a refuse heap,
and gave them to one of Company A (Gus Stone,
I think) who seemed glad enough to get them."
Our arms were beginning to need repairs, but
nothing could be done in that respect ; still they
were always clean and bright, and at the drills we
had we received the highest praise from the New
York officers.
252 The Story of Company A.
Towards the close of February an officer from
1864.
General Butler's headquarters came, as he said, to
inspect the Twenty-fifth Massachusetts Regiment ;
and when the men were drawn up in companies,
and for his benefit put through the manual, he ex-
pressed great surprise, and pronounced them the
best drilled regiment in the Department. When
told that these men were simply the "chaff" of the
Twenty-fifth Regiment, and had been kicked out of
it because they would not re-enlist, his anger knew
no bounds. "What is all this? No officers of your
own? and on that raid to Bottom's bridge? Why
Comment
Of the this is outrageous — contemptible. I'll report this
inspector.^ headquarters." Such was his language (I regret
I have not this officer's name); and when each com-
pany, as inspected, was marched away at his desire
under command of a "non-com," who put the men
through the evolutions, as wheeling, etc., he de-
clared he never inspected a better drilled lot of men.
Very good for the chaff — what must the better part
of the Regiment have been ?
The inspector also said that officers who would
use men this way deserved to be cashiered, while
every non-commissioned officer on the ground was
worthy a commission. This is not exaggerated a
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 253
particle. It was written down at the time, and is
still legible, though in pencil. It was a strange
spectacle — men so well drilled yet so ragged ; still
there was no complaint, and the men went to their
duty cheerfully, and began to look at the whole
affair as a huge joke.
While at Camp West the Twenty-fifth went on
several short raids, bringing in families, horses, etc.
One morning more men were found in line ready
for the march than were reported fit for duty the
day before ; and the New York officers on inquiry Pluck.
were told that the Twenty-fifth had no sick ones at
such times. They said : "Well, we don't under-
stand you Yankee soldiers."
March 2d we were relieved by the Eleventh
Connecticut, and on the 3d left Camp West and
started for Newport News, reaching- Yorktown in „
Newport
the afternoon, and finally halting some distance News.
beyond. The next day we reached Newport News
in the afternoon.
While at Camp West we of course made the best
of the situation, and an incident I remember as very
amusing at the time, was this : Sergeant Wesson
("Rats") with Corporal George R. Brown occupied
a small house together. Now when we first arrived
254 The Story of Company A.
at Camp West, "Rats" noticed a number of fowls
running around here, probably left by the New
York regiment ; and after a deal of pains, managed
to catch them all — three or four. "One day I was
surprised with an invitation to dine with Wesson.
The word sounded strangely, but at the proper
hour I made my appearance at Sergeant Wesson's
cabin, and was met with his 'Hallo, Sergeant, have
a seat.' A small table was in the center of the
floor, on which were tin plates, cups, knives, forks
A dinner.
and spoons, with soft bread and a covered dish.
The cabin was filled with an odor extremely pleas-
ant to a hungry man. What could it be ? Hog I
knew, salt horse I knew, and stewed beans in the
old black camp kettle I knew ; but what was this
savory smell that took me back to the days when
we lived in 'God's country,'* and occasionally dined?
Can it be ? It was — chicken Jricasseed ; and we
dined. Soldiers sometimes do get a sort of civilized
meal."
The country around Williamsburg is cut up by
many ravines, and on one running from the York
* A common expression in the army for home. Also called "The land of
biled shirts."
2 '5tk Regt., Mass. Vols. 255
to the James river, Fort Magruder was built, named
1864*
for the Rebel general who erected it.
We were received with much surprise by those of
the Twenty-fifth who had returned from furlough,
and though they seemed glad to see us, they had
hardly expected it. Colonel Pickett returned with Return
the re-enlisted men, and the Regiment was again to the
reunited under his command. During his absence egim
he had been kept in profound ignorance of the un-
fair and reprehensible methods resorted to for the
purpose of reopening the re-enlistment question.
But when all the facts came to his knowledge, he
expressed in the strongest terms his condemnation,
not only of the unjustifiable measures used by the
officers left in charge of the Regiment to induce the
men to re-enlist, but of the outrageous usage of
those who for their own good reasons declined to
do so.
March 22d a severe storm set in, and snow lay
six inches deep in camp — rather rough for canvas
walls. On the 26th, about 9 A. M., we left Newport
News for Portsmouth, and in the afternoon a steamer
arrived bringing all the re-enlisted men. So Com-
pany A was all together once more, and again there
was a Twenty-fifth Regiment.
33
256 The Story of Company A.
There were many recruits brought out at this
time, and the Regiment must have numbered eight
hundred men. We had been absent from the Regi-
ment about two months. On the 2yth of March
we went into camp at Getty's Station, which was
known as Camp Wellington, in honor of T. W.
Wellington, one of Worcester's most patriotic citi-
zens.
While in the neighborhood of Getty's Station we
once passed a large tent on which was painted in
Bodies £^a™n£ letters, "Bodies Embalmed," suggesting
embalmed pleasant thoughts to the soldier. "WThat do you
think of that, fellows?" said one. "How would you
like to be embalmed and go home on a furlough?"
asked another. "What do you suppose 'tis?"
"Well, I reckon it's some kind of a pickle" said an-
other— careless talk of thoughtless soldiers.
CHAPTER XII.
THE BATTLE SUMMER.
pAMP WELLINGTON was on the railroad lead
gg
ing to Suffolk, and but a few miles from Ports-
mouth. The tents were nicely pitched when one
day a heavy rain came on, and most of those be-
longing to Company A were completely flooded
out.
April 1 2th, at midnight, Companies A and D had
orders to fall in, light marching order, and twenty
extra rounds. In a few minutes Company A was
in line. The Colonel riding up, it being quite dark,
asked, "What company is that?" ''Company A,
sir" said the Orderly. "Just what I thought" was
the response. "He knows Old Company A, don't
he?" whispered one in the ranks. Company D
soon joined us, and we marched to the station and
took the cars. We reached a place called Magnolia
258 The Story of Company A.
Station, where we bivouacked. The next morning
we marched to Suffolk and halted for the rest of the
day and again bivouacked. On the i4th, after
marching six or eight miles beyond Suffolk and
finding bridges destroyed, without even a skirmish
we returned to Camp Wellington, reaching there on
A raid. ^e mormn§' of the 1 5th. The whole affair was, it
seems, a hunt for guerrillas, in which the other wing
of the Regiment took part, going by boat to Smith-
field ; but the expedition was no great success.
Camp Wellington was not on the best ground
that could be chosen, and Company A moved to
the rear where the land was higher. "One night
— 'twas long after taps — we heard water running in
our tent, and on getting up to see what the trouble
was, found ourselves ankle-deep in cold water.
Here was a go. Striking a light, we found the
water running through the tent. What could we
do? One Sergeant sat on his bunk wringing the
A shower. wa^er ou^ of n}s jacket ; another on a cracker box
was fishing up shoes and stockings from the deep ;
while 'Rats' Wesson sat on a three-legged stool and
sung 'I feel like one forsaken.' It was an uncom-
fortable 'incident,' but comical. For two hours the
rain poured, and then suddenly ceased. 'Rats'
Regt., Mass. Vols. 259
procured a shovel, dug a deep hole in the center of
1864*
the tent into which the water ran, and then bailed
out the hole ! "
The weather during our stay at Camp Welling-
ton was, much of it, wet and disagreeable ; but the
boys took advantage of the pleasant days to cut
slats in the woods for stockades on which to raise
our tents. Dave Bigelow and one man cut two
hundred and fifty in one day.
. We had heard that Plymouth, N. C., was sur-
rounded by the Rebels, and that General Wessells
was besieged there. We were ordered to his as-
sistance, and on the 22d of April embarked for
North Carolina on board a steamer — a double-
ender — and soon entered the Dismal Swamp canal.
This was in part a natural stream and partly artifi- Great
Dismal
cial, and did not admit of very large craft; was swamp.
narrow, of no great depth, and very crooked. It
afforded a short cut from the James river to Albe-
marle sound, saving an outside passage around
Cape Hatteras. The steamer was provided with
iron plates that could be put into position on the
sides, affording quite a protection from rifle shots.
The Dismal Swamp had been infested by Rebels
who had kept up a sort of guerrilla warfare, firing
260 The Story of Company A.
into boats, and indeed capturing one, so they went
1864.
armored. .
It was bright moonlight as we entered the canal,
and we were at once in the forest, for this swamp
covers an immense tract of country and is one vast
wilderness, having in its center a large sheet of
water called Lake Drummond. In many places the
stream was so narrow that the trees swept both
sides of the boat, and the turns were so short that
we were constantly getting aground. The scene as
Great we movec^ on was one °f singular wildness and
Dismal beauty. Many of the trees were draped with long
xm^' streamers of gray moss which waved gently in the
night air ; and the boat moving now in shadow, now
in bright moonlight, gave a weird effect to the whole
scene, making it very fascinating. We passed a
landing where our old friends, the One-hundred-
and-thirty-ninth New York, were stationed, and
right glad were we to see them — a pleasant surprise
for both parties. It was not until the morning of
the 24th that we entered Currituck sound, reach-
ing Roanoke Island about noon of the same day.
We here heard of the capture of Plymouth by the
Rebels, so our services were not needed, and the
Regiment was ordered back to Getty's Station,
25th Regt., Mass, Vols. 261
Company A being left on the Island. We found
Roanoke as we had left it, except that there were
more darky settlers.
After a stay of three days the Company was or-
dered back to Getty's Station the same way we came ;
and leaving the Island on the morning of the 27th
of April, reached our old camp at midnight of
that day, finding it deserted, the Regiment having
been ordered to that cemetery, Yorktown. We
occupied the abandoned camp that night, and next
day went to Portsmouth where all company prop-
erty was stored. We left here our knapsacks and
woolen blankets, leaving us with only our rubber
blankets and the clothes we had on — no more.
From Portsmouth we went to Norfolk and took a
steamer for Yorktown, arriving at evening of the
same day, and the Regiment was again all together.
Our temporary camp of shelter tents was on the
York river, some forty or fifty feet above the water.
It would seem to be a classic neighborhood for classic
Americans here. We, the "Used-to-bes," had grt
tramped over the fields where the British laid down
their arms in the Revolution ; we had traced out the
lines of earthworks of the contending armies of that
day ; but of Yorktown little can be said : a very few
262 TJie Story of Company A.
old buildings — and it is doubtful if a house has been
built there in the last hundred years. The building
occupied by Cornwallis was pointed out, but private
soldiers did not have much time to attend to such
matters.
Heckman here assumed command of his brigade.
o
It consisted of the Twenty-third, Twenty-fifth and
Twenty-seventh Massachusetts, and the Ninth New
Jersey. Here the whole corps was reviewed by
General Butler.
We were in the First Brigade, Second Division
of the Eighteenth Army Corps, General W. F.
("Baldy") Smith. The Tenth and Eighteenth
Corps formed the Army of the James, commanded
by General Butler.
Our brigade, early one warm May morning, was
marched towards Williamsburg a few miles, the
To Twenty-seventh in advance. The roads were heavy
dust, and we "Used-to-bes" chuckled some to
think the whole Regiment had been ordered to
visit that cemetery, Yorktown, and was now march-
ing over the same old dusty road we had tramped
a few weeks before. We came to a halt about mid-
day, and at 2 p. M. commenced our return march,
the Ninth New Jersey leading off; and we reached
V
\
MAP
OF
BERMUDA HUNDREDS
AND VICINITY.
N
•
N
\
\
Varina \
Aiken's Landm
2 5th Regt., Mass. Vols. 263
our camp pretty well tired out. It seems that all
1864.
this marching was but a feint, for on the 4th of May
we went on board transports with three days' rations,
and steaming down the York river, at 5 p. M. an-
chored at Fortress Monroe.
Sunrise of May 5th we were on the move again,
gunboats in advance, headed up the James river.
The day was clear and bright, and the long line of
steamers crowded with men, stretching for miles on
this beautiful river, reminded us forcibly of our ad-
vance on Roanoke Island, and of our departure from
Annapolis.
We noticed squads of Negroes running along the
banks of the river, with little bundles in their hands,
Up the
making all sorts of gestures to us as if they would river_
like to be taken aboard — slaves evidently seeking a
chance to escape. We passed the ruins of James-
town and Harrison's landing on our right, Fort
Powhatan on our left, and at 5 p. M. reached City
Point, at the mouth of the Appomatox river. We
here found our old friend, the steamer New York,
now a flag of truce boat, making trips to Richmond
occasionally. We moved still further up the river
and arrived at Bermuda Hundred. The troops
landed in a very short time, and our brigade was
34
264 The Story of Company A.
soon in line, and climbing the steep banks marched
through cultivated lands, and finally bivouacked in
a field of clover. The night passed quietly away,
not a shot being fired.
On the morning of the 6th we were again in line,
the Twenty-seventh men in advance, the Twenty-
fifth following. We marched through woods of oak
Cobi?s and pine, crossed several small creeks, and reached
HilL a considerable hill, up which we moved slowly and
cautiously, and on reaching its summit about noon,
took possession of "Cobb's Hill" without the firing
of a gun.
The view from Cobb's Hill was a fine one, and
very extensive. Looking to the southwest the
Appomatox came flowing towards us, and on its
banks stood the Rebel fort, Clifton ; beyond, and
perhaps eight or ten miles distant, were the spires
of Petersburg. The whole country around lay
spread out like a carpet at our feet, and the scene
would have been anything but warlike had it not
been for the tramp of soldiers and the rumble of
artillery, which continued for hours as the troops
hurried by pur bivouac. These were the Tenth and
Eighteenth Corps which composed the Army of the
James.
noissance.
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 265
Cobb's Hill is about eighteen miles from Rich-
- 1864.
mond. It was said that Petersburg could have been
taken at this time if our troops had been pushed
ahead at once, as there were few Rebel troops in
the town. It is easy to tell what "might have been";
but it was not known then how many troops were
there and if an error was made it was on the safe
side, and the capture "was not to be."
About 4 P. M. we were ordered to fall in, and our
brigade, General Heckman in command, with two
pieces of artillery, started out on a reconnoissance. A
We marched down the hill and through woody
swamps and fields, a distance of three or four miles,
when we heard shots fired in advance which denoted
that we had found the enemy. We soon entered a
large field and formed in close column by division ;
some distance ahead was a rail fence, and beyond a
railroad, behind the banks of which was the enemy
we sought. Company A was sent to the right to
act as flankers, and entering a wood on rising
ground and coming to a halt, we witnessed with
intense interest the movements going on so near.
We saw our boys advance with skirmish line
thrown out. The Rebels also sent out their line of
skirmishers, and both advanced until it seemed, from
266 The Story of Company A.
our position, that the two lines were not more than
1864.
five rods apart, and not a shot was fired by either.
Meantime our artillery had opened on the enemy,
and we could see every shot strike the embankment,
— see the dirt fly, rails scatter, and the forms of men
moving about. Soon the skirmishers were with-
drawn, and the Rebels fired a volley into our boys,
wounding some as we saw. The Twenty-seventh
opened fire, the Twenty-fifth being held in reserve.
The Ninth New Jersey changed their position on
Port the field, receiving a hot fire from the enemy which
Waithai ^ Soon returned. We saw General Heckman's
Junction.
horse throw up his head and sink down to the
ground, dismounting his rider, but the General took
the horse of one of his aides, and quietly mounted
again. We heard his orders given, and also those
of the Rebel commander.
We expected to see our boys charge and drive
the enemy from their position, but they began slowly
to retire ; and about 7 p. M. we received orders to
rejoin the Regiment. It seems instructions were,
not to bring on an engagement, but to find the
enemy ; this we accomplished, and we reached our
bivouac on Cobb's Hill at 10 p. M. The loss to the
Twenty-fifth was four killed and fifteen wounded.
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 267
This, our first fight in Virginia, is known as Port
1864.
Walthal Junction.
May /th, at 8 A. M., we were again in motion,
marching over nearly the same route as before, and
found ourselves near the place of yesterday's en-
gagement. On the ground lay our dead, which for Unburud
dead.
some reason — I know not why — had been left on
the field where they fell. The bodies had been
stripped of their clothing ; the enemy could rob the
dead, but could not give time to bury them. A party
was now detailed to perform that service. Prisoners
taken here said the robbery was the niggers' work
— possible, but not very probable.
We found the enemy strongly posted, and our
artillery got into position at once, with the infantry
at supporting distance laying on the ground in a
ploughed field. It was a terribly hot day, and as fidd
the hours went by many men were sun-struck. In Junction.
Company A eight men suffered from the intense
heat, three of whom were carried from the field and
did not return to the Company for several days.
Meanwhile an artillery duel was going on, shot
and shell flying over our heads as we lay here. It
was exciting to watch the enemy's shot as they ap-
proached us — they could be plainly seen. At one
268 The Story of Company A.
time the Rebels fired chunks of iron rails at us, and
1864.
these came wabbling along through the air causing
a deal of mirth among our boys. We were startled
by a flash of light, and a loud explosion : a well
directed shell from our battery had penetrated a
Rebel caisson, causing the explosion. It was said that
when General Heckman saw this he declared that
it paid him for the loss of his horse the day before.
On our right we could see General Brooks's di-
Ma vision hotly engaged ; with loud cheers they dashed
Chester- forward to fall slowly back. Again they made a
charge, and from the artillery we heard the heaviest
Junction. & *
firing of the day. This time it was a success ; Brooks's
men drove the enemy, and they withdrew their ar-
tillery from our front, and all was quiet in our vi-
'cinity. Brooks had destroyed the railroad, taken
many prisoners, and a victory had been won. About
5 P. M. we started for our camp on Cobb's Hill.
This engagement was known as "Chesterfield
Junction."
May 8th we began to fortify Cobb's Hill, and on
the Qth, at about 5 p. M., we left our camp, and suc-
ceeded in getting as far as the railroad between
Petersburg and Richmond without opposition. We
destroyed the railroad, broke the telegraph wires,
2$th Regt., Mass. Vols. 269
and pushed on towards Petersburg. We encoun- -
tered a small body of the enemy, and drove them
across Swift Creek. Our skirmishers were now
firing- rapidly, and the enemy opened on us with
their big guns ; but we pushed forward through
woods, and formed in line of battle near Arrowfield May 9-
Church. The right of the Twenty-fifth rested on
the Petersburg turnpike, and at this point was a Church.
section of our artillery. We commenced firing at
once, as is customary in battle — that is, "at will."
The boys were working like beavers, evidently
firing to some purpose ; but it was seen that the
enemy were about to charge. Colonel Pickett took
in the situation, and while we were doing our level
best we received the order, "Cease firing," which
was promptly obeyed. The men finished reloading
their rifles, and stood waiting. We did not under-
stand the "why" of this order, but we soon found
out. The enemy were ready, had set up an infernal
yell, and were coming at double-quick ; but no fur-
ther order came to us. The Rebels were fast short-
ening the distance between their line and ours, and
we were getting anxious, but finally hear the cau-
tionary command, "Steady, men, wait for the word";
and the Twenty-fifth Regiment stood as steady and
2 70 The Story of Company A.
silent as if on dress parade. On came the yelling-
1864. , .. . ,.
horde until within — it seemed to us — not over
twenty-five yards. It was an anxious and critical
moment, and it afforded Colonel Pickett an oppor-
tunity to see of what stuff his regiment was made.
May 9. Suddenly came the order: "Twenty-fifth, ready";
rld and like clockwork every rifle was in position ;
Church. "Aim," and every eye was glancing along a rifle
barrel ; " Fire," and that volley, almost like a single
shot, sent death and dismay into that Rebel
host.
The effect was like an electric shock. The long
line of gray was thrown into the wildest disorder —
shattered — broken into fragments. Their men fell
by scores, and the ground was literally covered with
the dead and wounded of that Rebel regiment. So
fierce was their charge that several of their men
were actually forced clear into our line and were
made prisoners. It was a most gallant charge, and
it met with a terrible and bloody repulse.
It was in vain the enemy tried to form for another
charge ; we kept up such a deadly fire that it was
impossible. They fell back out of range, and
troubled us no more. Meantime how fared it
with our boys ? Nobly they stood the shock, but
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 271
they, too, had fallen by scores. Company A had
1864.
only twenty-seven men in line at this fight, and of
this number nine were wounded — just one third.
Many of Company A were on detached service,
others sick in hospital, and the Company was smaller
than most of the others at this time.
While the fight was going on the smoke from the
guns settled thick around us, and the noise was
absolutely deafening. As the boys fell out wounded
they were taken to the rear and the line closed up,
and the firing went on as steadily as ever. How Bravery
bravely the boys stood up to it ! How the sweat ur
boys.
rolled off their faces ! Lieutenant Bessey was struck
in the breast, but fortunately the wound was a slight
one. He called for a pipe, and seating himself on a
stump, cheered on the boys as -if nothing had hap-
pened,— no white feather about that man.
Amidst all the horrors of the situation — dead and
dying all around us — an "incident" occurred which
shows how the ludicrous and sad are sometimes
strangely blended. There was in the Company a
new recruit named James Kerwin, a short, good-
natured Irishman, who, while the fight was raging,
was struck by the fragments of a shell and both legs
wounded. Jimmy fell to the ground making the
35
272 The Story of Company A.
queerest noises, and rolling about so strangely that
it was absolutely comical. Sergeant Burr stepped
up to him and said: "Is that you, Jimmy? Are
jimmy you hit?" "Oh," said Jimmy, "oh Sergeant dear,
Kerwin. jt's me that's hit, and both ov me legs is shpilt in-
tirely." This was too much, and the boys laughed
heartily ; and the firing went on, ceasing only when
the Rebels were out of reach, and all was quiet in our
front.
"The fight was over, and with Comrade Arthur
White of Company H (a Leicester boy and a brave
one), I strolled over the field, and in our immediate
vicinity — that is, directly in front of our regimental
line — we counted over seventy dead and wounded,
Rebel scattered about, and in little heaps of three or four
dead and together. From the wounded ones we learned what
' troops we had been fighting ; a/id it certainly is a
remarkable fact that the Twenty-fifth South Carolina
and the Twenty-fifth Massachusetts had met in a
fair fight." The result we have seen.
It might be thought that with so much firing more
men would have been killed and wounded in our
front ; but it should be remembered that the Twen-
ty-fifth Regiment of 1864 was not the Twenty-fifth
Regiment of 1861. It left Massachusetts one
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 273
thousand strong-, but at this time there was not
1864.
over half that number in the ranks. The regimental
line was hardly three hundred and fifty feet long,
and it was in front of this line that so many Rebel
dead and wounded were found.
The following is a correct list of the wounded of
Company A at this battle :
Lieutenant M. B. Bessey, breast.
Sergeant T. M. Ward, leg.
Private L. J. Prentiss, groin (very severe. He
died from the effects).
Private Augustus Stone, right arm (amputated). Names
Private Charles H. Knowlton, hand (three fin- -wounded.
gers lost) .
Private Charles A. Mayers, leg.
Private James White, leg.
Private James Kerwin, both legs.
Private Nelson Tiffany, groin (severe).
Entire loss to the Twenty-fifth Regiment, sixty
men.
After the fight parties were detailed to bury the
dead as usual. Pits were dug say six or eight feet
square, and four or five feet deep, in which the dead
were placed as quickly as possible, one row on
2 74 The Story of Company A.
another, and hurriedly covered with earth — a sicken-
ing sight. Yet this is "Glorious War."
Night coming on cold,, we prepared for a cheerless
bivouac the best we could. We lay on our arms
that night — that is, with rifles by our sides ready to
jump into line at a minute's notice. In the morning
we were relieved, and fell back to our camp on
Cobb's Hill. This battle took place near the old
weather-beaten building known as Arrowfield
Church, from which the battle takes its name.
On the 1 2th of May we were ordered off again in
Again in light marching order. Many boys left their rubber
motion.
blankets behind ; this proved a mistake, for we were
gone five days, every one of them cold and wet.
The rubber blanket should always go with the sol-
dier, and the woolen one too, if possible. During
these cold, wet nights we suffered a great deal. We
had more or less fighting every day.
The first day we discovered the enemy about
noon, and drove them across Proctor's Creek, and
halted for the night in the edge of a wood. On
this day, while lying on the ground in line, Comrade
Death of William Holman was struck by a bullet intended, no
' doubt, for a mounted officer riding in our front.
This was the only bullet that reached us at this time ;
2$th Regt., Mass. Vols. 275
and if \ve had been standing in -the same place
1864.
probably Holman would not have been hit. He
moaned pitifully, was taken to the rear, where he
soon died, and we saw him no more.
The next day (May i3th) we were ordered for-
ward, and entering a thick wood, the Regiment
marched through in line, the skirmishers encoun-
tering the enemy's pickets and driving them to their
works at Drewry's Bluff. On reaching the edge of
the woods we were in sight of the enemy's en-
trenchments, and received their fire at once.
We were ordered to lay down, and for hours we
had shot and shell flying over us. Many of the
boys went to sleep in this situation, undisturbed by
the noise of the firing. Once a shell burst directly
over our line, and inquiry was made if anyone was
hit. Some raised their heads and looked about, but
hearing no reply, curled down again ; and it was not
known until some time after — certainly more than
an hour — that Comrade Henry Goulding was killed. eat °*
3 Goulding.
A portion of the shell had struck him on the back
between the shoulders, killing him instantly. He
died without a groan.
Skirmishers were thrown out, and succeeded in
keeping the enemy's guns pretty quiet for two days
276 The Story of Company A.
(oh fatal delay), though more or less firing was
going on all the time. We had changed our posi-
tion, and were now nearer the enemy's works than
at first, behind a weak line of breastworks made of
•
logs, rails, and earth thrown up with bayonets and
tin cups, for we had no intrenching tools.
On the 1 5th our brigade held the right of the
army, and the regiments were in line in this order :
extreme right, Ninth New Jersey ; then followed the
Twenty-third, Twenty-seventh, and Twenty-fifth
Massachusetts. The space between the Ninth New
Jersey and the James river was .occupied by a few
colored cavalrymen. During the night of the I5th
there were several attempts to break through our
line, which were repulsed every time with severe
loss to the enemy. Later a heavy fog settled down
over the whole country around, so dense that at a
distance of two or three rods nothing could be seen.
May 16. Under cover of this fog, about 4 o'clock on the
j morning- of the i6th, the Rebels made an attack on
Dreivry s
Bluff, our right, and, after heavy fighting, succeeded in
crushing the Ninth New Jersey, and turning our
right ; and before we were aware of it, had gained
our rear. At the same time we were engaged in
front, an assault being made along our whole line.
2^th Regt., Mass, Vols. 277
In this horrid gloom, the yells of the advancing
enemy, the musketry firing, and the roar of the ar- Ma ^
tillery, were sounds terrible to hear, and madly ex- Battle of
citing. Soon the regiments on our right came ^"7
rolling down upon us, crushed and broken. The
Twenty-fifth gallantly repulsed the impetuous
charges of the Rebels in front, and unflinchingly
held their position alone after the whole line, right
and left, had been broken and swept away by the
overwhelming force of the enemy. Lieutenant
Daly, in command of the right flank, Company K,
reported the perilous condition of affairs on the InPertl-
right, but the Colonel replied that he had no orders
to retire, and that he proposed to hold on at all
hazards. He directed Daly to deploy his company
to the rear at right angles with our line, and check
the flanking force. The Rebels advancing in large
numbers, immediately overpowered and captured
most of his company.
Company A, under command of Lieutenant Burr,
was now ordered to the rear as skirmishers, to check,
if possible, the tide which seemed about to over-
whelm us. We soon saw dimly through the fog
forms of men moving about, and, approaching
nearer, noticed that some had on blue coats ; and
2 78 The Story of Company A.
supposing they must be our own men, one of Com-
Ma xg pany A sung out : "What regiment are you ?" "We
Battle of are Rebels, damn you ; take that ! " was the reply ;
ry's and the whistling- of bullets told us what they meant.
tilujf. •
"Good for you, Johnny ; take it back again," was
the retort of the A boys, with the same accompani-
ment. But of what use was it ? We were a thin line
of skirmishers, and it was plain to be seen that there
was at least a regiment in front of us. We soon,
obeying orders received, quickly moved off by the
right flank, narrowly escaping capture.
The enemy advanced and opened fire on the
Regiment at not over twenty yards distance. This
was indeed a most critical moment. Hotly engaged
with the enemy in front, and now receiving a heavy
fire in the rear, the Regiment was simply sur-
rounded. There was a single chance left. Instantly
we were faced to the rear and ordered to charge ;
and with a cheer the Regiment rushed upon the
A charge Rebel line, pouring a deadly volley into their ranks,
7rand throwing them into such disorder that before
they could be rallied by their officers our Colonel
had given the order: "By the right flank; and we
had marched around the enemy's left to the rear,
ready for them again upon anything like equal terms.
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 279
The conduct of the Twenty-fifth at the Battle of
1864.
Drewry's Bluff was magnificent and beyond all words
of praise. The perilous position they were placed
in was a trying test of their courage and soldierly
qualities ; and nothing but their excellent discipline
and prompt obedience to orders saved the entire
Regiment from capture. Cool and undaunted they
waited for orders, and they received them. They
had unqualified* confidence in their commander,
and to his prompt and decisive action they owe their
marvelous and brilliant escape.
But Company A did not all escape, as the follow-
ing list will show : Loss in
Corporal Walter H. Richards, killed.
Private John A. Coulter, wounded.
Private Francis Greenwood, wounded.
Corporal Jerome H. Fuller, captured.
Private Amos E. Stearns, captured.
Private Charles E. Benson, captured.
Private B. C. Green, captured.
Comrades Goulding and Holman had been killed
two days before, so, all told, Company A lost nine
men in the fight at Drewry's Bluff.
In this fight we lost our brigade commander,
• 36
280 The Story of Company A.
General Heckman, who was taken prisoner. Captain
Belger, with a portion of his battery, was also
captured. Our brigade (ist) had lost, since we
Heavy loss landed at Bermuda Hundred twelve days before,
almost eleven hundred men. The Twenty-fifth
Regiment in the same time lost over three hundred
men, while Company A lost eighteen.
General Heckman, and Colonel Lee of the Twen-
ty-seventh, both being captured, the command of
the brigade devolved upon Colonel Pickett, leaving
Lieutenant-Colonel Moulton in command of the
Twenty-fifth. Colonel Pickett rallied the brigade,
forming line of battle half a mile to the rear of the
original line in the morning. During the day dif-
ferent positions were occupied, holding the enemy
in check. About 5 P. M. we fell back towards our
camp at Cobb's Hill, which we reached at 10 o'clock.
General Stannard, a few days later, assumed com-
mand of the brigade, and Colonel Pickett again took
charge of his own regiment.
An "incident" occurred during the fight at Drewry's
An Bluff that was highly amusing. Private Sidney
incident. Atkinson, a tall Yankee recruit, during the struggle
in the fog was taken prisoner by a squad of Rebels.
. He had been in the habit of carrying, attached to
Battle-field of Orewry's Bluff
MAY r .
'
Regt., Mass. Vols. 281
his belt, a small hatchet ; and when taken prisoner
almost the first words said to him by his captors
were : "Well, Yank, I reckon we'll take that hatchet."
Atkinson replied : " I suppose you will, Johnny,"
and gave it up at once. He noticed as they marched
along that his captors had lost their way in the fog
and were trying to find their men. Atkinson cooly
said : " Look here, Johnnies, I was over this ground
this very morning. I know where we are and where
your men are. I'll show you ; come on." He quietly
led off, his captors as quietly following; and in less The tables
than two minutes he led them into the presence of turned-
our own men. The Rebels saw the joke at once,
and cursed their "damned stupidity." "Now,
Johnny," said Atkinson, "I guess I'll take that
hatchet"; and he did.
The following extract from a letter of Captain
Emerson Stone of Spencer to the writer, shows that
the promise made by the prisoners captured by us
at Roanoke Island in 1862, to make return for our
kindness to them while in our hands, if it was ever
in their power, was not forgotten :
The Story of Company A.
I was captured May i6th, 1864, by "Wise's Brigade" of Vir-
1864. ginians, the same men who surrendered to us at Roanoke Island
in '62. My captor was a tall, fine-looking man, who on learning
what regiment I belonged to, at once declared his intention of
standing by me, and doing for me all that was in his power to alle-
viate my sufferings, this in pursuance of a resolve formed, as he said,
by their entire brigade after their exchange at Roanoke, to treat there-
after every Yankee that the fortunes of war might throw into their
hands with the greatest possible kindness, in repayment of the
courteous treatment which they received at our hands as prisoners
of war. Right royally did he fulfill his vow, for no one could have
Kindness showed greater kindness than he showed to me. He bound up
repaid, and stanched my wounds at first, then brought water to refresh
me, placing at the same time the contents of his haversack at my
disposal ; protected me from the covetous desires of his needy
comrades, who sought to replenish their long neglected wardrobes
at my expense ; and in every way seemed anxious to show his
sympathy and willingness to help me.
Reaching the hospital he asked the surgeon in charge to look
at my wounds, and secured his early services, as well as a special
guard detailed to care for me and look after all my wants until the
surgeon called for me. Then taking from his shoulders his own
blanket, he carefully placed it under me, and after arranging me
as comfortably as possible, said he was obliged to report to his
command, and bade me a feeling good-bye. I have often re-
gretted that I did not learn the name of this whole-souled man
whose large heart was filled with humanity, although covered with
the Rebel "gray" ; and I would to-day, after the lapse of so many
years, give the best hundred dollars I ever saw for the privilege of
grasping him by the hand.
I will add that I subsequently received the same kind treatment
from the surgeon who amputated my arm, who was also a kind-
hearted man ; but I have always surmised that his interest in me
was stimulated by the words or efforts of my kind captor, who so
Regt., Mass. Vols. 283
faithfully stood by me — an enemy — in my hour of sore distress. -
Do not wonder that I have a kindly feeling for Wise's Brigade of 1864.
Virginians, and especially for my unknown generous captor, and
that I often breathe for him a prayer for heaven's richest blessings.
General Heckman has claimed, in a letter pub-
lished in a Northern paper, that the Rebel loss in
our front at Drewry's Bluff was estimated at over
.
four thousand, which was many more than OUT He
brigade numbered. He also stated that the mus-
ketry firing was the severest he ever experienced.
Our prisoners all reported the slaughter in our front
as something terrible and unparalleled.
For some days the troops were engaged day and
night in strengthening our fortifications at Cobb's
Hill. Almost daily the Rebels made an attack on
On the
some part of our line, but were easily repulsed. All defensiv
this time we lay on our arms at night, and were
turned out at two or three o'clock in the morning,
ready for an attack. In one direction from our
camp was a beautiful grove, but it was in the way
of our guns. Pioneers were sent into this grove,
and in forty-eight hours it had disappeared. In
forty-eight hours more a heavy line of earthworks
extended over the spot, and cannon looked down
into the valley below. These works reached from
284 The Story of Company A.
the James river to the Appomatox, below Port
l64' Walthal.
This work continued until the 2;th of May, when
orders were received to move again, so we marched
a few miles and bivouacked for the night. The next
day we moved to City Point, crossing the Ap-
pomatox over a pontoon bridge ; and once more
going on board transport steamers, were soon sail-
ing down the James. We reached the York river,
and passing up that and the Pamunky, arrived at
White House Landing May 3Oth.
The weather was fine as we sailed down that
t
A delight- beautiful stream, the James; and the entire trip to
White House Landing was in striking contrast to
what we had been through of late. The York river
is much smaller than the James, but still a noble
stream, while the Pamunky is so crooked that a
vessel will sail towards all points of the compass in
making the ascent.
On the 3ist of May we marched all day, and
about midnight, while passing through an extensive
forest, we ran on to the pickets of Grant's army.
Army He had been fighting his way through the Wilder-
*' ness, and we had, at last, joined the ARMY OF THE
Potomac.
POTOMAC.
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 285
Our march from the White House was through
1864.
a good country, reminding us of New England. By
the roadside we passed grape yines, cedar, shrubbery
of oak, and blackberry bushes — much like the coun-
try roads in Massachusetts.
June ist opened as fine as could be desired, but
by the middle of the day the heat was intense, and
many soldiers were completely exhausted by the
march. For many miles the road, which was heavy Severe
march.
with dust, had been strewn with dead horses and
mules, and the stench from them was horrible.
About 4 o'clock in the afternoon we found our-
selves before the enemy's intrenchments at Cold
Harbor.
June 2nd our brigade was under fire nearly all
day, and at night the enemy charged our lines, but
were repulsed with a heavy loss. Our army was in
line at this time in the following order : Ninth Corps Battle of
(Burnside) on the right, then came the Fifth Corps Cold
(Warren), Eighteenth Corps (Smith), Sixth Corps
(WTright), and on the extreme left the Second
Corps (Hancock). Sheridan with his cavalry
covered our left at the Chickahominy river, while
Wright's cavalry guarded our right. The line of
battle at Cold Harbor was six miles long.
286 The Story of Company A.
Rations and ammunition were given out, and we
laid on the ground that night to get what sleep we*
could, for "there was to be terrible work o.n the
morrow." June 3d was a black day in the calendar
of the Twenty-fifth Regiment.
We left our bivouac in the early morning, moved
a short distance, and laid down again under cover
of thin woods. We had caught glimpses of the
enemy's earthworks, and saw their immense strength.
We felt that it would be almost an impossibility to
take the works in our front. We knew that be-
hind those works were thousands of brave men with
Beforethe rifles, awaiting our approach; and we knew those
intrenchments were lined with batteries. We knew
it meant slaughter for us to make the attempt ; and
gloomy forebodings settled down over the whole
regiment. The Twenty-fifth at this time had only
three hundred men in the ranks, and the whole
brigade of four regiments numbered scarcely fifteen
hundred men.
All these things we talked over as we laid on the
ground under the trees. A little ravine was near,
through which flowed a small rivulet — a mere
thread of water ; and we were partially protected by
a slight elevation on our right. We calculated the
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 287
chances, and we felt that they were terribly against
us ; but to "obey orders" is a soldier's duty. "Wait _
' f June 3.
for a time to die ! " Battle of
Cold
We were in close column by division at this time Harbor
— that is, a front of two companies in a division —
five divisions. We heard loud cheering on our left,
and artillery firing rapidly. We knew our boys
were making an assault on the enemy's line. We
could only guess at the result. An officer passed
by and reported Hancock successful.
"Forward!" The hour had come. We moved
slowly up the slight elevation, beyond which a
thousand deaths awaited us. No man faltered,
and only the wounded ones fell out ; for we were
under fire all the time while lying under the trees.
We gained the front and were obliged to oblique to
the right somewhat, to place us in proper position.
We were at once under a murderous fire. The
enemy's works were directly in front. Colonel
Pickett was marching at the head of the Regiment,
and at this moment waved his sword over his head,
and shouted his orders: "Come on, boys; forward, The
double-quick. CHARGE ! " We dashed forward with charge-
a cheer. The enemy's earthworks in our front,
perhaps twenty rods distant, were enveloped in
37
288 The Story of Company A.
smoke and flame, and volley after volley of mus-
ketry sent bullets through our ranks like hail. At
June 3. *
Battle of fae. same moment we received an enfilading- fire of
artillery on both right and left flanks.
Harbor. }
The slaughter was fearful. Colonel Pickett went
down with a bad wound in the hip, and the ground
was thickly covered with the dead and wounded —
The and so quickly done. The enemy kept up such an
result. jncessant fire that to stand up against it and live was
impossible. So to escape utter annihilation we
dropped to the ground and stubbornly held the
position we were in, and — an actual fact — with
tin cups, knives, bayonets, and our hands, threw up,
painfully and slowly, a low bank of earth, which in
a measure protected us from the enemy's fire ; and
the hours dragged slowly along until dark, when
intrenching tools were brought, and regular earth-
works were made and rifle pits dug.
Brigadier-General P. D. Bowles of the Confed-
erate Army, in a letter printed in the Philadelphia
Weekly Times of January 3 1 , 1885, describes this
charge of the Twenty-fifth as he saw it from the
Rebel intrenchments. His account is as follows:
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 289
On looking over the works I discovered what I supposed to be
one regiment, with a single flag, and an officer in front with sword 1864.
raised high in the air, calling on his men to charge. I ordered
my command to place their guns on the works and wait for orders.
When the advancing line reached within seventy yards I ordered
my line to fire, when the whole of the Federal regiment fell to the
ground save one man, who ran back to the edge of the woods and Confed-
attempted to hide behind a white oak tree, but was completely erate
riddled by fifty balls in less time than it takes to write it. testimony.
The heroic regiment that made this gallant charge was the
Twenty-fifth Massachusetts, which was the only regiment that
obeyed orders to advance. This we learned from the twenty odd
officers and men who fell down among the dead and wounded at
the first fire. The balance of the brigade had refused to. go for-
ward, and not since the charge of the three hundred at Balaklava
has a more heroic act been performed.
In this charge of the 36 of June the Twenty-fifth
Regiment lost, in killed, wounded and missing, two
hundred and twenty men out of three hundred and
thirteen, leaving for duty, June 4th, less than one
hundred men, Company A losing fifteen out of
thirty. All this happened within a few minutes of
time, for nearly all fell during the charge.
The following is a list of the killed, wounded and
missing of Company A :
Killed : Private F. B. Brock.
' ' Ira Lindsey.
Sidney J. Atkinson (he of the
hatchet) .
290 The Story of Company A.
Wounded : First Lieut. M. B. Bessey, shoulder.
1864.
Second Lieut. Geo. Burr, head.
First Sergt. S. H. Putnam, slight.
LOSS at Sergt. Frank Wright, side.
Corporal G. F. Stearns, hip.
Harbor.
L. J. Elwell, shoulder.
Private L. W. Stone, severe.
" A. D. Whitcomb, head.
J. Madden, groin.
Missing : Corporal Walter S. Bugbee.
Private H. W. Dryden.
Charles O'Neil.
The wound of Colonel Pickett was a very se-
vere one, and he was absent from his command
Colonel ^or several months. He rejoined the Regiment at
Pickett. New Berne in November, 1864. He was then suf-
fering severely from his wound, and being disabled
from further duty "Our Captain" left the service in
January, 1865, with the rank of Brevet Brigadier-
General, this honor having been conferred upon
him for gallant and meritorious services during the
war.
The 4th of June was passed quietly behind the
works, but on the 5th there was righting all day
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 291
long-. At this time the stench from the dead bodies
1864.
between the opposing lines was dreadful. Parties
were sent out at night, and in the darkness and
silence tried to bring in the wounded. A flag
of truce had been sent to the enemy before this,
to make arrangements to bury the dead, but with
no success.
On the yth cannonading was kept up, all day, and
men were killed at times, half a mile in the rear of
our works. A second time a flag of truce was sent,
which was successful, and fatigue parties went out
from both sides, and the dead were buried. While
this was going on there was no firing along fog, Burial of
lines, and the stillness that ensued seemed very
strange to us. The truce was only for two hours,
and it was a hurried job, this burial of the dead. It
was a singular spectacle as we mounted on top of
our earthworks and looked over the ground. The
Rebels did the same while the burial of the dead
went on. When the time was up a signal gun was
fired, and the detailed parties made haste back to
their respective places ; and then it would have been
death to show a head above either line of works.
The 8th of June was a beautiful day, but very hot
and severe for the boys in the rifle pits. At night
292 The Story of Company A.
the military bands of both armies played. The
1864.
Union bands played The Star Spangled Banner,
Red, White and Blue, and Yankee Doodle, while
the Rebel bands gave us Dixie and The Bonnie
Blue Flag.
The Qth, loth and nth of June passed away
without actual fighting, but a constant firing was
kept up.
The Twenty-fifth had landed at Bermuda Hun-
dred on the 5th of May with seven hundred splen-
did veterans. One month's fighting in the rear of
Richmond reduced this number to a trifle over three
hundred ; and the morning after the Battle of Cold
ear/u j-jg^Qj. (June Ath) there were only one hundred
sacrifice. w '
men fit for duty. "The gallant six hundred," where
were they? Killed, wounded, in hospital, and down
in Southern prisons. This was war and its deplor-
able results. It was a terrible sacrifice, but it was
for the Union and the flag, and our country was
saved by the blood of its heroes.
It was now ebb tide with the Twenty-fifth Regi-
ment. Six officers and less than one hundred men
were all that remained for duty. This shows the
wear and tear of regiments and brigades in active
2$tk Regt., Mass. Vols. 293
service — that terrible drain of men going on con- ~~
1864.
stantly , and which all the recruits could not replace.
One day, at Cold Harbor, Lieutenant George A.
Johnson of Company G, formerly Orderly Sergeant
of Company A (Old Posey), was wounded in the
rear, and a stretcher was called to take him away. Another
He was carried slowly' a short distance, and as the lncldent-
bullets were flying thickly around, he became un-
easy, and finally jumped off and made a straight
line for the rear, saying : "I can't wait for no
damned stretcher." As he passed along on his way
to the hospital tent, with blood streaming from his
wound, he met the commanding general, who said :
" Lieutenant, don't you want a stretcher?" "I've
got one coming," was the reply. "Are you badly
wounded?" " Nothing but a shot in the rear!"
said Johnson ; "Guess it won't amount to much ! "
It would hardly be fair to pass by the "Dog of
the Regiment" without some notice. When the
Regiment left Worcester Company A had two pup-
pies as pets. They were christened Whiskey and Our dog
Brandy, and were well cared for. Brandy was a Wfliskey-
good dog and died young, but Whiskey, on the
contrary, continued to thrive, going out with the
pioneers at New Berne, going on marches with the
294 The Story of Company A.
Regiment, and participating in nearly all the battles
1864.
to Cold Harbor. At this battle the dog was wounded
by a rifle ball, and found his way to the hospital,
where the ball was taken out and given to the
Orderly Sergeant of Company A. Whiskey was
well cared for at the hospital, but in the movement
of troops after the fight the poor dog was lost, and
we never saw him again.
The Company A boys taken prisoners at Cold
Harbor fell into the hands of North Carolina troops,
some of whom were among those captured by us at
Roanoke. On learning what regiment our boys
belonged to these men treated them with all possible
kindness, and nobly redeemed the promise made
while our prisoners, to make return for our kindness
to them if they ever had the opportunity.*
Sunday, June I2th, passed very quietly, with no
more firing than usual. Captain Goodwin, who
had returned a few days before, was now in com-
works mand of Company A. After dark the boys were
called in from the rifle pits, and we quietly evacuated
our works ; and marching all night, reached White
House Landing about 5 o'clock on the morning of
the 1 3th. This night march was a very hard one,
* See page 90.
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 295
and on reaching the Landing, guns were stacked,
1864.
the boys dropped to the ground, and many were
instantly asleep. Some crawled on their hands and
knees to the river's brink, two or three rods away,
and drank like so many animals. They were com-
pletely exhausted.
We went on board transports again and steamed Active
down the crooked Pamunky and the York, up the cam-
James, landing at 9 p. M. of June i4th near our Q\(\Pa*smng-
camp. Four days' rations were cooked, and on
the morning of the i5th, at 4 o'clock, we started off
on a march. This was surely active campaigning.
On the 1 5th we encountered the enemy, and our
regiment having the right of the brigade, had an
open corn field in our front. We marched in line Enco1tn_
of battle to within perhaps three hundred yards of ter with
a Rebel battery situated on a hill to our left, and'
came to a halt. The enemy opened on us at
once with both musketry and artillery. They had
our exact range, and we had one man killed and
eighteen wounded in a few minutes. Captain
Goodwin was wounded by a shell which exploded Captain
very near his head, hitting him in the shoulder and Goodwin.
in the face, from the effects of which he lost an eye.
This shot came from the right, and not from the
38
296 The Story of Company A.
battery on the hill at the left. This was the last we
1864.
saw of Captain Goodwin in Company A. He was
mustered out the following October as Brevet Major.
Captain Parkhurst moved us forward at double-
quick about one hundred yards. This movement
took us out of range of the enemy's guns, and
though men were still wounded here, it doubtless
saved many lives. Lieutenant Bessey was hit once
Bessey s
wounds, more, this time in the foot, making three hits for him
within a few days. Though Dame Fortune scatters
her gifts with a lavish hand, in battle she distributes
them very unequally. Some are never wounded,
others always are. Lieutenant Bessey was hit four
times — yea, a fifth time was he touched (which, by
the way, was scarcely mentioned in the dispatches);
yet with all this, and added to it the old army saying :
"Three times and out" (death), Bessey served
through the war, and preserved that good nature
for which he was noted. Bessey was irrepressible.
He was mustered out as Brevet Major in March,
1865.
We were ordered to lie down, and all day long
we were in this corn field under a scorching sun,
with no protection save what we obtained by pulling
up the corn, which was about two feet high, and
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 297
covering our heads with it. It was provoking to
lay there as we did, hour after hour, and hardly fire
a shot in reply to the Rebels, who were blazing
away at us all the time. They would give us a few
shells, then a solid shot would come roaring along
and plough up the dust near us, then • the rascals
would get outside their works and fire at us with
their rifles. We kept the enemy busy in this way
while our troops got their guns into position.
About sundown we heard a heavy gun fired on
our left, and looking at the Rebel battery saw a
shell burst directly over it. Another shot was fired,
then many in quick succession, and shells exploded Battle
thick and fast in that battery. The whole Regiment near
' Peters-
got up and watched with intense interest the move- burg.
ment now going on. Soon a long line of Boys in
Blue was seen moving towards the battery. The
line was somewhat broken as the boys made their
way through the trees, which had been cut down
and left to obstruct the way ; but they passed
through them, and with wild cheers swarmed up the
hill like bees. Shells from the Union guns were
dropping into the battery every moment ; the Rebels
attempted to reply, but it was of no use ; the place
was too hot for them. Soon the Boys in Blue
298 The Story of Company A.
reached the enemy's works, and over they went on
1864. .
one side while the Rebels departed over the other.
Our Regiment cheered enough to split their throats.
Then the guns of the battery were turned on the
Battery ^ymg enemy, and the fort was taken. Down went
taken. tne Rebel rag and up went Old Glory. Nine guns
and two hundred prisoners were reported as the
result of this gallant movement.
A little later, just at dark, an advance was made,
and Company A was thrown out to join the skirmish
line already moving on our left, under command of
We the Orderly Sergeant, S. H. Putnam, all three of
advance, the officers having been wounded. While advancing
at double-quick, solid shot from some Rebel guns
directly in front came over the line, but did no harm.
A battery in this direction had made some trouble
during the day — probably Captain Goodwin was hit
by a shot from it.
Still advancing, an earthwork was seen directly in
front ; but the order was u Forward ! " and away the
boys went over the breastwork, all together, fortu-
nately finding the battery deserted. It had evidently
been vacated but a few minutes, and in a great
hurry, for blankets, clothing and equipments were
scattered around, and a supper already prepared
2$th Regt., Mass. Vols. 299
was left untouched. We found here two brass -
Napoleon guns, and caissons complete. Word was
sent by Corporal Jimmy Green to Captain Parkhurst, CaPture
of the
commanding the Regiment, who ordered Captain
Harrington with his company to draw the guns to the
rear, which was done. This capture was represented
in the papers of the day — New York Tribune and
others — =as having been achieved by Captain Har-
rington and his company, when really the guns were
taken by Company A under command of a non-
commissioned officer. The Worcester Spy printed
a letter giving a statement as above, signed by one
of the members of Company A. When this paper
reached the camp Captain Harrington accused our
Orderly Sergeant of writing the letter, and claimed
the great honor of having captured the guns, he, as
he said, being a commissioned officer, and the
skirmishers being under command of a non-com.
The officer claimed it because he was an officer ;
we claimed it because we did it. The affair was of
no great importance anyway ; but if there was honor
enough for an officer to claim, there was certainly Of it.
enough for a few privates ; for the achievement was
theirs, and theirs only. So much for the taking of
these' guns ; and simple justice requires that to
300 The Story of Company A.
Company A should be given the credit which is,
1864. • i • i
most certainly, its due.
Before June 1 6th Company A numbered one sergeant,
one corporal, and eight privates fit for duty. From
this time the Regiment performed duty in the forti-
fications then being constructed before Petersburg.
On the 1 6th of June, strange to say, the Regi-
ment was quiet all day, but at night fell into line
and marched several hours under fire, getting back
to our bivouac at midnight. The i yth was another
quiet day ; we moved about two miles, still under
fire. On the i8th the Regiment was posted on the
banks of the Appomatox river, directly in front of
the Rebel intrenchments. Their line extended for a
long distance at nearly right angles with the river.
The position of the Regiment was a peculiar one.
The bank of the river was forty or fifty feet above
the water, and quite steep ; and we were on this
bank, entirely hidden from the Rebel works. The
level ground above could be entirely swept by the
Another enemy's guns. A charge was ordered, and in at-
temptmg to obey, the Regiment was obliged to get
upon this ground, and the left was forced to swing
around to the right to bring the whole line par-
allel to the enemy's works. When the order was
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 301
given this was attempted, but hardly had the men
1864.
reached the level ground above when a line of men
arose from behind the enemy's breastworks and Dlsasier-
poured in such a volley, that in an instant our line
was cut down like grass, and the ground was covered
with wounded men.
The enemy's fire was incessant, and nothing hu-
man could stand against it, so we fell back to our
first position on the river bank. This attempt to
charge the enemy's works resulted in a loss to the
Regiment of six killed, and one officer (Captain
Tucker) and twelve men wounded. Private Delany
of Company A was killed, and E. B. Fairbanks and
one other wounded.
On the i Qth we were relieved by the Sixth Corps
and started for Bermuda Hundred, bivouacked one
nipfht, and reached our destination at 10 A. M. of the
Useless
2oth. We rested one day and one night, and then march.
marched back to our old intrenchments. We were
now in the trenches before Petersburg, being alter-
nately two days on duty and two days in the camp
at the rear. The Regiment had but one hundred
and twenty-five men, including five officers. Com-
panies A, C and K were now consolidated.
302 The Story of Company A.
The camp spoken of was situated in a ravine
1864.
about half a mile from the works, and although at
this distance, it was commanded by the enemy's
guns. A small stream of water ran through this
ravine, which afforded the boys the luxury of a bath.
At this time Company A numbered twenty-six
men and no officers. Soldiers were returning to
the Company from time to time, so the number
varied daily.
This kind of life was wearing to the men, firing
going on constantly, night and day. On the 3Oth
of June, in the afternoon, we, commenced shelling
the enemy, and about 5 p. M. they replied. For an
hour we had the heaviest cannonading we had ever
experienced, and yet the Regiment, being behind the
earthworks, had only five men wounded, and, sin-
gular as it may seem, all these by a single shot.
These men were grouped together, and the shot
Effect of struck right in the midst of them ; one man had his
one shot, foot taken off, another had a leg broken, a third
was hit in the head, a fourth had both legs mangled,
and the fifth received a slight contusion on his side.
The ball could not be found. The men were taken
to the hospital, and in amputating the leg of one of
them — Private Thayer of Company D — the ball was
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 303
actually discovered in his thigh, and proved to be
a three pound shell.
July 4th, Lieutenant John W. Davis of Company
C, wishing to have a moment's conversation with
the Orderly Sergeant of Company A, advanced for
that purpose in a stooping position to avoid the
observation of the enemy. After having passed a
few words of greeting, he unconsciously raised him-
self. It was but for a moment, yet on the instant a Davis
bullet struck him in the left shoulder, passing clean wounded-
through his body, and lodged in the ground some
rods to the rear. He placed his hand to his shoulder
and exclaimed : "Sergeant, I'm a dead man," and
fell to the ground. A stretcher was called and he
was taken to the hospital tent. Lieutenant Davis
survived this wound two years. He was a citizen
of Worcester, and was for some time connected with
the police force. He died August 2d, 1866, much
regretted by those whose good fortune it was to be
acquainted with him.
While in another portion of the trenches nearer
the enemy's line, a soldier was one day fatally shot
in the head, and for a while our men were puzzled
to know where the shot came from. Finally a sol-
dier seated himself in the exact spot the wounded
39
304 The Story of Company A.
man occupied when he was struck, and he noticed
1864.
a large pine tree in the enemy's works. Watching
he saw a puff of smoke come from the top of the
tree, followed by the report of a rifle, so he con-
cluded that a Rebel sharpshooter was concealed
there. Several of our sharpshooters were called,
and at a given signal all fired into the tree ; a man
was seen to fall from its branches, and we were
troubled no more by shots from that quarter.
Some talk there was of "Explosive Bullets," but
Explosive^- do not remember seeing one while in the service.
bullets. A member of Company A found near Williamsburg
(I think) a bullet about three inches long, having
three blades which were intended to spread open as
the bullet left the gun. It was a barbarous-looking
affair, but this was the only one we ever saw.
Bullet-proof vests were talked about to some ex-
tent. These consisted of two thin pieces of steel
made to fit the body, which were to be worn one on
either side and the cloth vest buttoned over them,
Bullet- as we were told. I never knew of any being used
Pr°°f jn this wav and I never saw but one. In this in-
vests.
stance a soldier was cooking his "sublime flapjacks"
in one of the sections. Truly, everything is of
some use.
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 305
It has been estimated the entire length of the
1864.
line of earthworks around Petersburg was over one
hundred miles. These works included thirty-six
forts (some with bastions), and over fifty batteries.
The main line consisted chiefly of solid banks of
earth, high enough to shield the men as they stood
behind them, and too thick to be easily battered
down with cannon. Forts and batteries were built
along the line at convenient distances, and on rising
ground when possible. Some of the forts before
Petersburg were very large, and were furnished
with bomb proofs. These were usually constructed
J around
of logs, six or eight feet high, and both top and Peters-
sides were so covered with earth as to be impene- burg'
trable by shot or shell. The bomb proof at Fort
Wadsworth was one hundred and fifty feet long and
twelve feet wide. Some of these forts were fine
specimens of military workmanship ; for instance,
Forts Fisher, Wadsworth and Sedgwick. Men with
bold, brave hearts were required to attack and
defend such places, but it was continually being
done before Petersburg.
At Fort Stedman the distance between the Union
and Rebel lines was scarcely six hundred feet.
Between these were two picket lines — Union and
306 The Story of Company A,
Rebel — two hundred feet apart. The men in these
1864.
picket lines were in rifle pits, each of which con-
tained two or three men ; and night and day, in sun
and rain, heat and cold, the men passed the weary
hours in never- tiring vigilance, knowing that upon
them might depend the fate of an army. The only
protection for the men in the rifle pits was the
small mound of loose earth thrown up in front of
each, behind which they must keep entirely con-
cealed.
siege of From the Appomatox river to Fort Sedgwick, a
Peters- d^ance of perhaps four miles, firing was kept up,
burg.
day and night, for months ; and it was here that the
Twenty-fifth Regiment was posted all the time it
was in the trenches. Forts Sedgwick and Stedman
were known among the soldiers as particularly "hot
places." The former received the name of "Fort
Hell"; and its opposite in the Rebel works — Fort
Mahone — was called " Fort Damnation."
Probably there was more firing at the above
mentioned forts than at any other place in the whole
line. The battles around Petersburg may well be
called the Waterloo of America, compared with
which the Belgian Waterloo sinks into insignificance.
The assault on Petersburg, June i5th, resulted in
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 307
a loss to the Union troops of over ten thousand
1864.
men. The actual siege of Petersburg began June
1 9th, 1864, and the place was not captured until
April 3d, 1865 — a period of nearly ten months.
The summer of 1864 was very dry, and there was
much sickness among the troops, dysentery being
the prevailing disease. We suffered more from Disease
heat this summer than ever before. There was no
great variety in our rations while in the trenches ;
for instance, we had coffee and hard-tack for break- ^ations-
fast, boiled pork and hard-tack for dinner, coffee
and hard-tack for supper. This diet month after
month, together with the extremely hot weather,
probably caused most of the sickness. We received
. . r 10- Sanitary
at one time provisions from the Sanitary Com- Com,
mission, consisting of vegetables, pickles, canned mission.
fruit, condensed milk, etc. These things were a
perfect godsend to the soldiers ; and although the
quantity, when divided among a regiment, was a
small allowance to each man, still it did a great deal
of good, and was thankfully received.
A short distance from our camp, on a slight ele-
vation, our people had planted a big gun, which
was fired every fifteen minutes, night and day, and
sent a shell weighing one hundred pounds into
308 The Story of Company A.
Petersburg every time. This gun was called the
" Petersburg Express," and for some time was fired
with great regularity.
While in the trenches the practice of exchanging
newspapers with the enemy was started.* This was
usually done in the morning, and in the following
manner. One of our men would make known to
the enemy that he wanted to exchange a paper by
shouting: "Hello, Johnny." "Hello, Yank," was
the reply. "Got any tobacco?" "Yes; got any
Exchange papers ?" " Yes ; all right, Johnny, let's change."
of papers. Qur man would then wave a paper upon a ramrod
until it was seen by the enemy, and they would wave
one over their works in the same manner. Word
was sent along the lines at the same time that no
shots were to be fired. Our man would boldly
raise himself head and shoulders above the works,
and the enemy would do the same ; both would then
jump over the works and advance until they met half
way between the lines. Here they would shake
hands, exchange papers or coffee and tobacco, say
* In this exchange business the Johnnies usually wanted papers, coffee, and
gum blankets, while the Yankees wanted papers and tobacco. We often got
through this source news of battles fought before we heard of them from
home. Frequently pieces that would give important information were cut
out by both parties before the papers were exchanged.
2$tk Regt., Mass. Vols. 309
a few friendly words, and then return to their re-
1864.
spective lines. I never knew a shot fired from either
side while this was going on. An instant after it
would have been death if either had showed his
head above the works.
July 22d Company A was reduced to its lowest
number, and at this time might be said to have The
ceased to exist as an organization. One sergeant, Company
one corporal, and three privates — five men all told,
and not an officer left. For a time roll calls were
dispensed with, as there were none to answer.
Poor old Company A !
Up to this time there had been little or no rain,
but we now had a heavy storm, and we got the full A storm'
benefit of it, as the pits and trenches were filled with
mud and water. The boys were obliged to stay
there night and day, and sleep as best they could.
The Regiment at this time was under command
of Captain Parkhurst, and had dwindled down to
four small companies, with five officers and less than
one hundred guns.
During July the firing on each side was much less
than when we first occupied the fortifications. It
seemed as if both parties had become tired of the
co-nstant shooting at one another, and sometimes
3 io The Story of Company A.
days would pass with scarcely any firing. The time
dragged slowly away, and the monotony of the
thing was hardly endurable.
At dark on the 2Qth of July we were relieved
from the trenches, and at midnight, with sixty
rounds of ammunition and three days' rations, we
marched to the left a couple of miles, and reached
the position occupied by the Ninth Corps. Here
we lay on the ground until about 5 A. M., when a
dull, heavy report startled us ; this was accompanied
July 30. by a shaking of the ground, and at the same instant
artiHery all along the line began to play upon
explosion.
the enemy's works. The first report was the blow-
ing up of a Rebel fort which had been undermined
by our troops. This fort contained, as was reported,
a regiment of Rebel infantry and sixteen guns.
The Forty-eighth Pennsylvania regiment, under
command of Lieutenant-Colonel Pleasants, origina-
ted and executed the plan of mining and blowing up
the Rebel battery. The work was commenced June
25th, and completed in about a month. The dis-
tance was over five hundred feet. On the 27th of
July the powder was placed in the mine, the whole
charge consisting of three hundred and twenty kegs
of twenty-five pounds each — in all, eight thousand
2$th Regt. , Mass. Vols. 3 1 i
pounds. The train was fired on the 3Oth of July,
1864.
about 5 A. M. It was a terrible success. The crater
made by the explosion was about two hundred and
fifty feet long, fifty feet wide, and twenty-five feet
deep.
Although we stood ready for action we were not
in position to see the full effect of the explosion, but
those who' did, say it was a terrible sight — men,
guns, timbers and earth going heavenward together.
After a tedious delay the Ninth Corps charged, and
After the
carried a portion of the enemy's works, penetrating expiosion.
beyond the second line of intrenchments ; but owing
to some unaccountable misunderstanding, troops
were not ordered to their support. The Rebels
rallied, our boys were driven back, and it ended in
the enemy regaining all the ground they had lost,
including the blown-up fort.
We left the scene of the explosion about noon of
the 3oth, and went again into the trenches, but not
where we were previously. In our new situation
the lines were very near together, and a sap had
been run from our works and a short line established
to within fifty or sixty feet of the Rebel lines. On
looking through our loop holes we frequently saw
the Rebels looking at us through theirs ; and a rifle
40
312 The Story of Company A.
barrel would often be introduced into these aper-
1864. . .
tures m the endeavor to obtain a shot.
August ist an arrangement was made under flag
of truce, and parties were sent out to bury the dead
Truce for from both colored and white regiments; the black
buying tne black, the white burying the white.
This truce lasted from 6 to 1 1 A. M.
In our immediate front the enemy displayed a
white flag, and a truce took place between our regi-
ment and the troops of the enemy directly opposed
to us. This was done because the lines were so
near together that both parties feared to show them-
selves under the general truce. Each party in the
meanwhile mounted their respective breastworks,
and cooly sat gazing upon the other and talking
like old friends. The distance was so short that
small shells with fuse lighted had been thrown from
one line to the other, after the manner of hand
grenades.
A good deal of fun passed between us and the
Johnnies, and some twitting upon facts. One Union
boy asked a Rebel : " How did you like that style
of going to heaven, Johnny?" referring to the ex-
plosion. "We rather gave you hell that time, didn't
we?" said another. But the talk for the most part
2$th Regt., Mass. Vols. 313
was good natured ; and the burial of the dead went
on. This was dreadful business ; the bodies had
lain upon the ground since the day of the explosion,
and had been exposed to the hot sun during the
day and to the dampness at night, so that their con-
dition was horrible. Pits were dug and the bodies
thrown in any way. When the work was completed
a signal gun was fired, and the troops hurried back
to their respective intrenchments.
The Twenty-fifth Regiment was relieved by the
Twenty-third Massachusetts on the fifth of August,
and we had fallen back to our old camp, when, about
6 P. M., we were startled by a sudden explosion
followed by volleys of musketry, while our batteries
opened fire. We quickly fell into line and marched
to the scene of the trouble, and found that the
enemy had attempted to mine that portion of the
works we had just left. We had expected this, for
we had heard the Rebels at work digging for some
time previously. They must have miscalculated
the distance, for the explosion took place just
outside of our line, and consequently did no harm,
with the exception of overthrowing a few gabions
and burying for a few minutes some half a dozen of
our men. The plucky Twenty-third held the line.
3 1 4 The Story of Company A.
Several men were wounded by the Rebel earns
1864.
which commenced firing as soon as the explosion
occurred, and Colonel Stedman, who commanded
our brigade, was killed. At this time troops had
been taken from our line and sent elsewhere, and
the duty was now more severe than ever, as we
were in the trenches four successive days, with only
two of relief.
A few days after this explosion we occupied an-
other position in the intrenchments where the lines
were about two hundred feet apart, and between
them for a long distance was a great field of corn.
When the fortifications were built this corn was some
two feet high, while at this time it was six feet in
r height, and fairly concealed the Rebel works from
Green & J
corn, our view. One dark night, after the moon had gone
down, men were sent over the breastworks to cut
down this corn, which was quickly and quietly ac-
complished as far as could be done, and the next
day the boys were feasting on the green ears.
One night a big fire was seen in Petersburg. We
could hear the bells ring and the engines whistle,
while our big gun, "The Petersburg Express," sent
its regular messages into that afflicted city.
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 315
While lying- in the trenches in the vicinity of Fort
1864.
Stedman, a large gun in the enemy's line had caused
us a great deal of trouble. One day a large mortar
was put in position and trained upon this gun. The
soldiers crowded around to witness the effect of the
first shell. In a few minutes it was fired, and its
course was watched with a great deal of interest ; it
was seen to strike outside the enemy's works and
harmlessly explode. A second shell was fired.
Higher and higher it ascended and soon began
falling in a graceful curve in the exact range of the
i- T r 11 • • i i * A Rebel
big gun. it was seen to tall inside the enemy s
works, and an instant later exploded ; a cloud of silenced.
dust was thrown high in the air,vin which could be
seen the form of a man, pieces of timber, etc. This
shell had done its work, and the Rebel gun was
dismounted.
One day we had an exceedingly heavy rain, and
the little stream which ran through the ravine where
we camped suddenly overflowed its banks, and
A torrent.
rushed along, a perfect torrent, filling the whole
ravine with water. So suddenly did this take place
that some sick soldiers lying in their tents were
near being drowned. Large army wagons were
carried down the stream for some distance, which
3 1 6 The Story of Company A.
shows the strength of the torrent. The waters sub-
1864. . .
sided as quickly as they had risen ; no lives were
lost and little damage was done.
At this time the Regiment was receiving recruits
from Massachusetts, and such god-forsaken speci-
mens as some of them were, it would be hard to
match. It seemed as if the good, patriotic people
of Worcester had robbed hospitals to find substitutes
to fill their quota. There were old, broken-down
men, very young boys ; and one or more were idiotic
Tough and one was afflicted with epilepsy. Several were
recruits. SQ ]ame ^^ t^ey had to carry canes, and taken
altogether they were the toughest lot of recruits the
Regiment had received. These men had taken
their bounties, and one of them actually received
more money ($1200) than any individual of the
original members did for three years' service. The
majority of these recruits were returned as being
unfit for duty, but the persons for whom they were
enrolled as substitutes, and by whom they were
paid for this non-service, effectually escaped thereby
their liability to the draft.
August 27th found the Regiment in camp near
Cobb's Hill, where it had been sent for a much
needed, often promised, and well earned rest. If
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 317
we reckon the time from April 26th, when the
1864.
Regiment was assigned to Heckman's Brigade, un-
til this date, August 2/th, we have four months,
during which we were constantly on duty and
actually under fire. This camp was a comfortable
' A rest.
one, and it was a treat to be able to walk about
without fear of being shot. The lines at this point
were a quarter of a mile apart, and the Union and
Rebel pickets were on very friendly terms, ex-
changing papers and conversing with each other
daily. The Rebel pickets even saluted our officers
when they chanced to see them.
About September ist orders were received for
the Regiment to start for North Carolina, so we
sailed down the James again, to Portsmouth, where ^
we obtained our knapsacks left there four months Carolina.
before. On September 6th we went on board the
steamer Wenonak, and proceeded on our way, but
a thick fog came on, and we anchored for the night
near the village of Hampton. A heavy gale blow-
ing outside detained us for a time, but at length we
sailed from Hampton Roads, and after a fair pas-
sage around Cape Hatteras, arrived at New Berne
on the loth.
3 ! 8 The Story of Company A.
Our camp was pitched on the bank of the Trent
1864.
river, opposite the town and near the railroad bridge
which was destroyed when New Berne was cap-
New tured. Most of the companies were sent out on
Beme picket duty. It was amusing to observe the boys
again.
as they wandered around the camp, careless and
happy, — no firing here, no being shot at ; and the
time of service was drawing to a close for the
"Used-to-bes."
At this time a strange disease broke out in New
Berne which proved generally fatal. This was at
last pronounced to be yellow fever, and it continued
Yellow
fever, to increase in virulence until it became epidemic.
The people died in such numbers that it was almost
impossible to bury them. Thirteen hundred died
in six weeks. Comrade George F. Penniman died
September i8th, and Comrade Reuben H. DeLuce
on the 2Oth, both of yellow fever. These men had
been detailed from our company, and had remained
on duty in New Berne ever since its capture, es-
caping all the hardships of the campaign to die as
time drew near for them to be discharged from ser-
vice. During the prevalence of this disease in New
Berne many sad cases came to our knowledge ; in
one instance a house was broken open by the police
25th Regt., Mass. Vols. 319
and a whole family found dead ; yet many of the
1864.
sick recovered. The disease was accounted for by
the filthy condition of the town.
We visited our old home. Camp Oliver, and found
the ground covered with negro shanties. One or
two old cook houses were the only signs remaining
of the occupation of the place by the Twenty-fifth.
On the 5th of October those of the Regiment who
had not re-enlisted — fifteen officers and two hundred
and forty-eight men — bade their comrades "Good-
bye," and, under command of Captain Denny, took
the cars for Morehead City. We were bound for
Home-
home now, and not for the battle field. At More- ward
head City we went on board the steamer, Dudley bound-
Buck, and putting out to sea, doubled Cape Hat-
teras once more (the sixth time for some of us),
reaching Fortress Monroe at 10 A. M. of October yth.
On account of coming from a port infected with
yellow fever we anchored at the quarantine ground.
After some delay here, we were allowed to proceed
to New York, where we arrived on Sunday, the Qth.
While on the passage from North Carolina two
men (not of the 25th) had died of yellow fever, an/1
were buried at sea. We were held in quarantine until
Wednesday, the i2th, when we passed up to the
41
320 The Story of Company A.
city and disembarked. That afternoon the Regiment
1864.
took passage on one of the Norwich line of boats
for New London, reaching that place sometime after
midnight. Here a delay was proposed, as our
Worcester friends wished to give us a public re-
ception on our arrival ; but the boys were impatient
to see home, and, taking the regular train, we
reached our journey's end at 4 A. M. of October i3th.
What a contrast to that October day of three
years before. Then it was a bright and beautiful
day, with thousands to bid us good-bye ; now it was
„ *' a cold and cheerless morning, and (not being ex-
pected at that early hour) none to give us welcome.
But it was soon noised abroad, and the City Hall
was filled with people eager to get a sight of the
soldiers. Among the first to greet us was "Our
Old Captain," Colonel Pickett, still suffering from
his wound of June 3d at Cold Harbor ; and lame as
he was, he had walked to the City Hall to bid his
old comrades welcome — and what a greeting was
that ! After a collation provided by the City, we
were addressed by the Mayor, Hon. D. Waldo
. Lincoln, Colonel William S. Lincoln (of the 34th),
and Colonel Pickett. We were then dismissed to
meet again October 2oth for final muster-out.
2$th Regt., Mass. Vols. 321
On our departure from New Berne those of the
1864.
Regiment who had re-enlisted — three hundred and
sixty men — were consolidated into four companies,
with ten officers. They did picket and guard duty
around New Berne, and participated in an expedi-
tion to Kinston and a brilliant engagement near
Wise's Forks, N. C. This portion of the Regiment
was mustered out July 2ist, 1865 — after the close
of the war.
On the 2oth of October, 1864, the Company met
again in Worcester, and, in front of the Old City
Hall, were mustered out of the service of the
Oct. 20.
United States. The original Company A, Twenty- Muster.
fifth Regiment Massachusetts Volunteers was no out-
more. Our full term of service — three years — had
expired — long years they had been to us ; and with
the proud satisfaction that duty to our country had
been "well done," we found ourselves again private
citizens.
With hand-shaking, tearful eyes, and every ex-
pression of good will and farewell toward each other,
the members of the Company separated, never to
meet again ; never again to rally under the starry
splendors of " Old Glory" ; never again to participate
in the wild excitement of the charge, or with quick
322 The Story of Company A.
eye and elastic step find place in the skirmish line ;
but henceforth to the end to lead the quiet life of
peaceful citizens.
Company A Association was formed some years
later, and annual reunions have been regularly held ;
but the men who were mustered out on that 2oth of
October, 1864, never all met again, for —
"Some are dead, and some are gone,
And some are scattered and alone."
One by one they disappear — drifting away like
withered leaves, on the uncertain tide of later years.
At present writing about thirty members of the
Company Association come together at the annual
meetings.
And now, kind, indulgent comrades, farewell.
The story is ended. Would it were better told, but
"what is written, is written."
If any shall find pleasure in following through
these pages — the wanderings of this band of men,
this company of soldiers ; shall glory with them in
their victories, and sympathize with them in their
2 5th Regt., Mass. Vols. 323
losses and reverses ; if any comrade shall call up
pleasant memories of his soldier life by the perusal
of this simple narrative — then, possibly, this story
has not been told in vain.
Again, farewell,
SAMUEL H. PUTNAM,
Late Orderly Sergeant, Company A, and Sergeant Major, 25th
Regiment, Mass. Vols.
Worcester, Mass., April 30, 1886.
THE DEAD OF COMPANY A.
%* Names of those who died in the Service.
GEORGE E. CURTIS, died at Hatteras Inlet, N. C., Jan. 21, 1862.
ELI PIKE, killed at New Berne, March 15, 1862.
Lucius F. KINGMAN, died at New Berne, Sept. 24, 1862.
EDWIN D. WATERS, died at New Berne, Nov. 5, 1862.
JOHN B. SAVAGE, died a prisoner at Richmond, March i, 1864.
WILLIAM E. HOLMAN, killed at Proctor's Creek, May 12, 1864.
HENRY GOULDING, killed at Drewry's Bluff, May 14, 1864.
LYMAN J. PRENTISS, died of wounds at Hampton Hospital, May
16, 1864.
WALTER H. RICHARDS, died of wounds at Richmond, May 18, '64.
FRANCIS B. BROCK, killed at Cold Harbor, June 3, 1864.
324 The Story of Company A.
IRA LINDSEY, killed at Cold Harbor, June 3, 1864.
SIDNEY J. ATKINSON, killed at Cold Harbor, June 3, 1864.
LIBERTY W. STONE, died of wounds at Milford, Mass., July 5, '64.
JOSEPH L. DELANEY, killed at Petersburg, June 8, 1864.
JAMES WHITE, died of wounds in New York harbor, June 23, 1864.
ABEL S. ANGELL, died June 28, 1864.
BENJAMIN C. GREENE, shot by Rebel guard while sitting on a win-
dow sill at Libby Prison ; died of the wound, Sept. 1 1, '64.
GEORGE F. PENNIMAN, died of yellow fever at New Berne, Sept.
18, 1864.
REUBEN H. DfiLucE, died of yellow fever at New Berne, Sept. 20,
1864.
JEROME H. FULLER, died a prisoner at Florence, S. C., Oct. 26, '64.
JOHN A. THOMPSON, died at New Berne, 1864.
JAMES M. HERVEY, died in New Berne, 1864.
25*^
H
M198519
e s-
THE UNIVERSITY OF CALIFORNIA LIBRARY*